Someone sedate me
RMH
NASA

ellievsbear

PR's Tumblrdome
One Nice Bug Per Day
đ
$LAYYYTER
Jules of Nature
Show & Tell
todays bird
sheepfilms

JVL
2025 on Tumblr: Trends That Defined the Year

Today's Document

Love Begins
cherry valley forever
official daine visual archive
KIROKAZE
tumblr dot com

seen from Netherlands
seen from United States
seen from Algeria
seen from Algeria
seen from Brazil
seen from United States

seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States
seen from United States

seen from United States

seen from United States

seen from Canada
seen from United States

seen from United Kingdom
seen from Uzbekistan
@starboyjxmin
Someone sedate me

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch âą No registration required âą HD streaming
Latibule Season 2: V
Pairing: Min Yoongi x Reader (Mafia/Detective AU)
Summary: In which he lost his latibule.
Warnings: Secret Identity, Yandere behavior, Obsessiveness, Possessiveness, Manipulative behavior, Violence, Mention of death, Disability, Sexual themes, If youâre not 18+ please, PLEASE, do not interact. Be mindful of the warnings. Let me know if I miss anything.
A/N: BTS is 7.
Masterlist, Latibule 2.IV
âYouâre finally awake,â a familiar, gentle voice on your right remarked.
You slowly turned to the direction of the voice, your eyes were slow to adjust from the sudden brightness of the white and sterile room. You could make out a man with a tall form, and even with the little vision you were left, you were sure you have seen this man before.
You blinked owlishly, clearing out the sleep from your eyes and little by little, your vision cleared out as best as it could. When it finally did, your breath hitched from the recognition of who this man was.
The man who claimed to have lost his cat years agoâ Sugaâs hyung.
He smiled at you when a stark recognition crossed your face.
âI never thought weâd see each other again,â he chuckled from his seat, on his lap was your chart. âLet alone in this circumstance."
You quickly sat up. Only now did you feel a restriction form your left hand. Your other hand was quick to reach out, feeling the dextrose drip attached to your skin. You turned to him with caution in your movement, memories of what transpired before this rushing into you.
He found you and he was going to end you.
âW-where am I?â trying to steady your trembling voice and muster some courage.
Seokjin tilted his head to the side. If he noticed your trembling, he did not mention. Apparently, he was content with observing you with almost scientific curiosity. âYouâre in my hospital,â he replied.
He followed your eyes as you tried your very best to see what this room was, your eyes drifting across the whole room as though you were looking for something.
âAre you looking for Yoongi?â he asked when enough silence passed with you looking like you were ready to bolt in any given moment. You were sure that
Your refusal to answer was an answer in itself. Your silence spoke volumes.
Seokjinâs relaxed demeanor was just adding up to your nervousness. Why was he not doing anything, you wondered? You were sure that he was a part of whatever shady business Suga was part of. It was impossible that he was not aware of that. After all, they did seem close and they were brothers. The correlation alone was enough to make you be wary of him despite the friendly act of his.
âHeâs outside the room,â Seokjin shared with lightness in his words. He chose not to divulge that his younger brother was literally just outside the room, standing guard as though someone was going to take you from him. Worse, that you would disappear right under his nose had he left his pose. âWanna know why? Apparently, he, and I quote, âcannot bear to see the frightened look his angel gave himâ.â
âDo you want to see him?â
âI want to leave.â
He stood up calmly and proceeded to check and adjust your dextrose. âDonât move this hand too much. Youâre going to bleed,â he advised, murmuring under his breath how Yoongi was going to hurt him if you were hurt under his care. He also noted how none of his brothers treated him with the respect the eldest should be given. Also, he grumbled about how he kept on feeding them despite their disrespect.
It wasnât lost on you how he didnât answer nor acknowledge what you said.
He fished a penlight from his white coat, âIâm just going to check your eyes, Y/N,â he said as he turned the penlight on and instructed you to open your eyes. âMinimal reaction to light,â he murmured to himself before writing down on your chart. âWhen did this happen?â
âShould I answer?â
âThatâs alright. Iâll just check with Doctor Choi-â
âHow did you know my doctor?â you asked in aghast. Did their hold know no bound? If not, how then would he know something of confidential matter?
âHmm?â he moved away from you slowly, his eyes comically wide and his hands raised as though in retreat. It would have been funny had you not been sure that he was one of the bad men you despised so much. âY/N, I donât know what youâre talking about.â
You squinted your eyes at his retreating form. The room that you were in seemed to be ridiculously large and despite the number of steps he was taking, he was still far from the door.
âI swear I donât know. But also, while we are in the topic of things I certainly do not know and have absolutely no way of knowing, I also have no knowledge of the scar on your stomach that suspiciously do not look like a cesarean scar.â
---
Seokjin jumped from shock when Yoongi stepped in front of him as soon as he exited the room. âIâm going to die early because of my own brothers,â he grumbled in irritation, clutching your chart to his chest. âI canât go without seeing my sunshine one more time.â
âHow is she?â
âHey, hyung! Have you eaten, hyung? Thank you for staying up all night to take care of the love of my life. I owe you one, hyung. Youâre just the best, hyung. Youâre so handsome, hyungâ really?! Is that so hard to say those things?!â Seokjin finished, his heavy breath a telltale sign of his agitation.
âLetâs just go ahead and pretend I said those things. Anyway, how is she?â Yoongi asked, his face couldnât hide the exhaustion from staying up all night and refusing to leave despite his assurance that you would be fine under Seokjinâs care. His face was even paler than normal.
He didnât even leave his post to eat that he had to call the only available brother (and not even his second nor third choice, but his last resort), Kim Taehyung, to disguise himself and come to the hospital with food. Taehyung then had to force the other brother to eat at least two spoonsful of rice.
Taehyung was rarely denied by Yoongi, so maybe Seokjin chose the right brother for this task. Never mind the fact that he was later on kicked out by Yoongi because he kept on looking closely and taking notes of the way he was acting because he said that it would be useful for his next movie character.
âHopeless. All of you are hopeless-â
âYou are, too. Howâs your sunshine, by the way?â Yoongi shot back and despite his lack of sleep, his words were sharp as ever.
âI donât know where she is, okay!? Why are you hurting me like this?!â he asked dramatically, childishly glaring at him. âI hate you! If you want to know how your Angel is, you better ask her yourself!â
Seokjin walked away, his steps quick and his white coat was trailing behind him which further added to his dramatics. A paid actor, if you would.
âIâŠI canât, hyung,â Yoongi admitted behind him. The quietness of the hospital wing was enough for him to hear his younger brotherâs vulnerability. Further, it was just enough to stop him from walking away.
âYoongi, you little shit, what do you really want to happen?â
Yoongi sighed heavily, his shoulders slumping in a rare display of weakness. The image of the strong, composed leader seemed to dissolve in the face of his fear. The man who was usually a pillar of strength was now showing vulnerability. It was true what they saidâeven the strongest man falls to his knees for the woman he loves.
âHyung,â he started, his voice low and his dark eyes down casted to the floor. âI just want her to be well. I want her to get back the life she had before I destroyed it. I want her to have a chance at normalcy. She deserves it. She deserves peace-â
 âShe will be well.â
âHow can you even be sure, hyung?â his voice, despite hinting a bit of hope still held despair. âYou didnât see her like I did. She was soâŠfar from who she was.â
Seokjin smirked, âBecause I said so. Now that that is out of the way, what do you really want? Whatâs really in that disgusting thingy you so fondly called a heart?â
Yoongi looked at him, his eyes held a certain darkness Seokjin was all too familiar with. He stood up straight, a strand of his hair fell to his face as he scoffed, âHer.â
He chuckled before leveling him with a serious stare. âThen go and get her.â
---
Your breath hitched when the door opened and your steps haltered.
Coincidentally, you knew who it was before he could even make it two steps inside the room. Even with your eyes failing you, you could never not know who he was. The sound of the door clicking shut behind him was unmistakable.
This was the moment of truth, you realized. This was your nightmares all and simultaneously coming to life.
You took a hesitant step back as his shoes made a sound. Your heart pounded in your chest, each beat louder and more frantic than the last.
âYou shouldnât be walking around just yet, Angel,â he admonished quietly, and by doing so, effectively broke the silence between the two of you. You had never forgotten how his voice sounded like despite attempting your very best to erase his existence from your memories. You had never forgotten how deep his voice sounded like, nor how to tell what he was feeling by the timbre of his voice alone.
Despite all that, you couldnât help but feel something when you heard his voice,
The anxiety was almost suffocating that your breaths came out short and quick. âW-why am I here?â
âYou lost consciousness, Angel.â
You stepped back when you heard his voice nearer. Unlike back home, you didnât know the layout of the room like the back of your hand. You were utterly and truly helpless in his presence. You only had yourself this time. âI want to leave.â
âYou need to get treated, Angel-â
âI want to leave!â you screamed at him, your hands now shaking uncontrollably from having to face the person who destroyed your world.
âAngel, calm down,â he implored, worry apparent in his voice but you didnât care. It didnât matter what he felt. You wanted him gone. You wanted to get away from this situation. You wanted to go home where everything was familiar. You wanted to hold your son again. You wished he never found you again. You wished that you could just wake up from this nightmare and back to your life.
Suddenly, the back of your leg collided with something solid, and you lost your footing. The room tilted as you fell, the moment drawn out, weightlessâuntil strong arms caught you before you hit the ground. His reflexes, honed from years of instinct, were faster than gravity.
You were in his arms again.
For a breathless moment, you were in his arms again. Your body stiffened immediately, every muscle tensing in protest. Panic flared hot in your chest, overwhelming every sense. The touch you had once welcomed now filled you with terror. You shoved at him, desperate to get away.
âDonât touch me!â Your voice was sharp, trembling with fear, and you struggled to free yourself, needing to break the contact. He loosened his grip, and you stumbled back to the floor, but his eyes never left yours.
âYouâre scared of meâŠâ he said in horrifying realization. Never in his wildest dreams did he ever want you of all people to be terrified of him when he had been nothing but gentle to you. Not when you looked at him before like he held all the answers and hang all the stars in the sky- too opposite of how now your eyes never left his in terror that he would do something terrible to you. Now, your wide, terrified gaze was locked on him as though he were something dangerous, something monstrous that might strike at any moment. The realization seemed to tear him apart, slowly, painfully.
âI-Iâd never hurt you,â he stammered, his voice shaky with desperation as if each word might be the last thread keeping him tethered to something he no longer understood. âYou have to know that Angelââ
âDonât call me that,â you cut him off, your voice harsh as you pulled yourself further away, dragging yourself from his reach, from his proximity. And inching toward any corner. The endearment that had once meant so much now felt like an insult, a reminder of everything he had taken from you. His very presence was a wound you were desperate to escape, a scar you could never heal while he was near.
He recoiled at your words, the pain in his eyes deepening as if the rejection physically hurt him. "Please... Iâd neverâ"
"Stop." Your voice shook as you raised a hand, as though the very sound of his voice was too much. "You donât get to talk like that. You donât get to act like you werenât planning to use me and kill me the first chance you got."
A deafening, soul-crushing silence settled over the room, so thick and oppressive it felt like you could choke on it. The accusation hung in the air, heavy, suffocating, leaving no room for either of you to breathe. His face went blank, as if every emotion had been stripped away in an instant, leaving behind only a hollow shell. His eyes searched yours, trying to find something, some trace of the person you used to be, the person who used to believe in him.
If you didnât know any better, you would think that he already left. His presence felt ghostly, his body frozen as if he couldnât bear the weight of your words.
âIs that why you are so scared of me? Is that why you let me believe that you were dead?â he asked lowly, disbelief apparent in his tone. Was all the agony he endured because of a misunderstanding, a mistake on his part?
Your heart skipped a beat. What?
He believed that you were dead?
"What are you talking about?" you asked, your voice barely a whisper, confusion mixing with the fear that still pulsed through your veins.
Suga took a shaky breath. If you could see him, youâd see the tears pooling in his eyes, glistening as they threatened to fall. His gaze never wavered, locked onto yours, a painful mixture of sadness and confusion reflected in the depths of his eyes. âT-that night, Angel, you disappeared. We couldnât find you anywhere. You justâŠvanished without a trace-â he paused, swallowing hard as if the memory was too painful to relive. âEveryone said that you died. Everyone told me that it would be impossible for you to survive that fire, not after the wounds you got. I never believed them. You must understand. I searched for youâyears, Angel. Years of believing I lost you forever."
Your stomach twisted as his words settled in. The intensity of his gaze, the genuine anguish in his voiceâit was as if he truly believed what he was saying. He had spent all this time believing you were gone, that you had died. But how? Why?
None of this made sense.
You shook your head, trying to clear the fog of disbelief clouding your mind. Your heart pounded in your chest, and your pulse roared in your ears as you tried to hold onto your version of the truthâthe one you had built to survive. "I didnât let you believe anything," you whispered, your voice shaking. âYouâre lying. Youâre making a fool out of me again. You didnât look for me because you wanted me gone! H-he told me that if you find meâŠthat youâd kill me. That youâre scared of being exposed for who you are-â
"Whoâs he, Angel?" His voice was soft, but there was a hard edge beneath itâan urgency, a desperation to understand what had led to this moment, what had driven you so far away.
You froze, realization crashing over you like ice water. No. You shouldn't have mentioned him. If Suga thought you had died, then maybeâjust maybeâhe believed that Hoseok had disappeared with you in the fire. If that was true, he had no reason to go looking for him. No reason to discover what you were protecting.
But time was running out.
Not just for you, but for Hoseok.
Kim Seokjin knew what you were hiding, and the longer you stayed here, the closer Suga would get to the truth. If he ever found out about your sonâŠ
Your breath hitched, panic clawing at your throat. You couldn't let that happen. You couldn't let him find Hoseok. "It doesnât matter," you said quickly, your voice cracking as you tried to mask your fear, but you knew it was too late. His eyes narrowed, sensing the shift in you.
"It does matter," Suga said, his voice growing harder, his patience wearing thin. "Tell me whoâs been feeding you these lies, Angel. Who made you believe I wanted to hurt you?"
You swallowed, feeling the weight of his words press against your chest. His eyes were locked onto yours, searching for any sign of weakness, any crack where you might let the truth slip. But you couldn't. If you did, everything would fall apart. You would endanger your son.
"Youâre not going to tell me? Fine," he said after a moment of tense silence, his voice dropping to a dangerous calm. "We have the rest of our lives to figure this out. But make this clear: you will not make me live without you again. Iâm not letting you leave me."
âYou canât make me stay here!â
Sugaâs lips curled into a slight, unsettling smile. "Oh, Angel," he murmured, taking a slow step closer, his eyes never leaving yours. "I can."
Your pulse quickened as you backed away, but there was nowhere left to go. The walls, the room, his presenceâeverything felt too close, too suffocating.
"You said you loved me once," he continued, his voice soft but chilling. "I told you then... you can never take that back."
Your heart pounded violently in your chest, the words hanging over you like a sentence. You had once loved him, but that love was gone, buried under fear, pain, and the desperate need to protect your son. Yet to him, that love still tethered you to himâunbreakable, inescapable.
"Things have changed," you whispered, fighting to keep your voice steady.
Suga shook his head slowly, stepping closer until the space between you was almost nonexistent. "No," he said quietly, almost tenderly, "the only thing that's changed is that now, I know what it feels like to live without you. And I'm not going through that again."
He reached out, his hand ghosting near your arm, but you flinched away, causing a flicker of something darker to flash across his eyes.
"You donât get to leave, Angel. Not this time."
Latibule 2.VI
Bound By Blood (m)
synopsis: A servant to the state since birth, forced to work for the royal family until you die. These are the conditions that have granted you life, yet are they are the same ones that can take everything away. He can take everything away. But he would never, for you are his future, his eternity.
k.taehyung x f.reader
âŠïž Ę Ëâ: wc: 16.0k
âŠïž Ę Ëâ: genre: royalty au, soft yandere, fluff, smut, smidge of angst
âŠïž Ę Ëâ: content: soft yandere!prince!taehyung, maid!reader, power imbalance, talks about death/violence, blood, slight predator/prey dynamics, manipulation, misunderstandings, dom!tae, tae calls reader lamb, oral (f.receiving), marriage related dirty talk, virginity kink/loss of virginity, size kink, praise, reader is fucked dumb, implied kissing reader while she sleeps, implied offscreen somno, implied stalking, ownership, tae is rlly sweet and adorable
âŠïž Ę Ëâ: notes: hello!!! this was meant to be a drabble but as you can see it spiralled out of control lmao. i got a little hyper fixated (and grew a really bad crush on this taehyung) so it ended up being way longer than i initially thought! regardless, i hope you all enjoy it as much as i did writing it!!
18+ -> minors / blank blogs dni
The Kim Empire.Â
Your home, your family, your livelihood all wrapped up in those three little words.
They practically brandish your mind, have been since you were no more than a babe. Stuck in the clutches of everything Kim since you were born. Your mother a maid, your father gone from the face of the earth. At least as far as you are concerned he is, anyway.Â
He is better off dead. The alternative of him living scott free in some far off land, meanwhile you have to serve the hand and foot of the king sets no more than the bitter taste of coffee beans against your gums.Â
Bedding your mother, no more than a fresh-faced maid at the time. Outcasting her the second after when he had to have known the rules of the palace. The demise it would cost both her and her future daughter. Perhaps every generation that followed as wellâ if there were to be any, that is.Â
Housestaff are not meant to have relationships. They are meant to serve the king and his bountiful family. How are you meant to do anything else with a child bouncing at your hip, a husband grabbing at your ass.Â
Youâve heard the speech plenty of times. The words ingrained in your skull just as the brand you received when you were far too young to remember the pain of it. Evidence that you are bound to the palace by blood until the very moment you take your last breath.Â
The punishment for becoming pregnant within the walls of the palace are simple: your child belongs to them. For anything within the Kim Estate is their rightful property, given to them by the grace of god.Â
You, a gift from god to serve the empire. You would snort at the notion if training from a young age prohibited it. You are just a result of your mothers kindness, her naivety.Â
You could never find it within your heart to blame her. She was just a girl who thought she was in love. Fired for her love. Had her daughter taken from her to serve for her love.
Love is something you will never be granted the property of.Â
You will be granted an allowance to send home to your mother to keep her afloat. You will be granted a room to sleep in, clothes to wear, food to eat. A secure job in which you can never be firedâ well. That is a lie. Though, your termination would come at the end of an axe, rather than a piece of paper.Â
You used to muse at the thoughtâ when you were a young girl, no more than 11 or 12. Going through your melancholy years, hating the rest of the world for simply existing. For putting you in a position where you could not change your fate, instead had to endure your present. Feeling like a girl trapped in a tower just like the bedtime stories had always prescribed.Â
One time you had caused such a ruckus in front of the oldest Kim son you really did think you were going to get the axe. Hell, you were even prepared for it. Locked away in a cell for two nights, brought before the executor.Â
Right before the swing was meant to be brought down against your neck the head maid ran into the room, gave some sort of letter to the man. She apologised profusely, gripping your ear and dragging you away from the scene.Â
You hadnât acted ary since then. It taught you your place. Made you realise the need to survive buried deep within your bones. In the innate way some sort of wildcat would lash out until it was bloodied and on its last breath.Â
You would not die at the end of a knife. Youâd live your life, acting a maid until you could die peacefully of old age. Even if it meant surrendering yourself to servitude for the most annoying brat youâve ever laid eyes on.Â
A quiet sigh slips past your lips at the mere thought of him. The sound would get you punished if anyone were to hear, especially in respect to the coveted crown prince of the kingdom. Few share the same opinion as you of himâ but then again most that work here arenât forced.Â
It is only when the stars are strung high in the sky that you allow yourself to feel such things. When you stay awake past the beginning of rest hours, most of the staff (save for the night shift) falling to sleep hours prior. Only then when youâre out in the gardens do you allow indignation to satiate your brain.Â
For the few hours of freedom you may hold dear until the next morning begins and you are forced to live the same day once more. Over and over again until the end of time.Â
Your fingertips reach out as you walk, bruised from the scrubbing of floors, to find purchase against the walls of flowers rimming the maze. Rough fingertips dance against the gentle petals of roses, lulling in the feeling. Picking themselves against the thorns without much of a thought, not withdrawing. Only pausing feet to observe.Â
How can something so delicate and beautiful wish to cause harm? It does not. It simply desires a way to survive. You could never fault it for that.Â
âPretty, are they not?â A dark, husky voice sends cold down your spine. Hairs become on edge, back straightens taught, ears perk just as if you are an obedient dog. Fear flashing through your entire being.
You do not wish to turn around. Do not have any want to face the man that has caught the air in your lungs. The one catching you in the garden without any proper attire in place. Though you must. You must bow, grovel at his feet for forgiveness for allowing him to see you in your nightgown. For not being in bed as you should.Â
Prince Kim has never been known for being kind.Â
Your body acts for you while your mind sets on pauseâ taking several steps forward, bending your body at the hips to give a proper 90 degree bow. Your hands clasp before you, hair coming down in front of your face.Â
âPrince Kimââ You rush, suddenly out of breath, âPlease forgive my insolence. I-I am not of right attire or mind to be standing in front of his excellency right now. Nor should I be excused for touching the property of the palace. I have no proper excuse and any punishment you decide will be deserving. Please forgive me.â The words recite from your lips like a bibleâ instruction of them being heard time and time again.Â
Cold night air whips at your ankles, fluttering the gown around your ankles. The chill only adding to the cold sweat youâve discovered has perspired. Making your hair dance around your shoulders.
You expect something, anything really. A slap, a single word. Though there is only silence in response. Silence that extends far too long and feels far too pungent for your taste. If he was going to do something, you rather he just get it over with.Â
After what feels like an eternity, you finally hear the baritone of his voice once more.
âPretty, are they not?â He asks again, repeating the same sentiments as before. Confusion bristles through as a kite in the summer air. Why is he asking you this? Is he not annoyed he caught a maid in such a level of disrobement? What is he trying to gain? What does he want?Â
All the questions you do not have any hope to answer rush through you causing you to feel confused and incomposed. Every boring lesson you were forced to sit through never taught you how to deal with this exact situation. You arenât sure what he wants, nor your place in the garden. The thought scares you.Â
Against your better judgement, you allow your chin to tilt up only slightly. Only enough to look at the manâ to try and read the expression on his face so you can better analyse your next action.Â
The shock you feel when you find his face is only inches from your own, frame bent down to make his eyes level with yours is something you cannot explain in words alone.Â
You would prefer to scream and run, however that is not an option at this moment, or so it appears. Instead, your eyes only widen in shock, in trepidation. Your mouth opens into a small âoâ as you stare.
Never before have you made eye contact with a member of the family. Never before have you had the luxury to view one so close. In any other circumstance, you suppose, you would surely be punished for such a thing. Someone lower should never view a future king in such a way.
You wish you could say he was a heinous, ugly beast for hatred of the palace alone. Yet you canât, for he isnât. He is beautiful.Â
Sure, you knew that already. Paintings of him are plastered across the wallsâ his face is everywhere eyes are able to reach. Yet this close, at this angle, you canât stop the way your heart skips a beat. Canât help but admire every facet of his complexion before being thrown in front of the lion again.Â
A gorgeous, blinding smile wipes across his face the moment you face him. Lips forming into an adorable box after he finally has your attention fully drawn on him. Youâre startled back once again, sending your brain into a further whirlwind than before.Â
He desires an answer.
âI um⊠Yes. I suppose they are.â You nod slowly in response, following in his footsteps as he returns to full height.Â
You must follow his leadâ it is how you will survive.Â
You usher a stray lock of hair over your shoulder, trying to stop it from hitting your face. The air starts to become stale again, feeling empty in the lack of his reply. It is awkward, and the way he stares at you, eyes darting around your faceâ your figure, has you feeling in some sort of girlish, embarrassed way.Â
You think you dislike the feeling.Â
âAre you a fan of roses?â His arms are pulled behind him, wrapped together as he bounces on his toes in something that looks like⊠boyish delight? The muddle of your brain can't help to understand a single thing. He is making no sense, trying to make conversation with you. Trying to find a morsel of companionship in someone who is meant to bow to him like he is the true god of your mortal plain.
You will have to oblige until he allows you to depart.Â
âI suppose so.âÂ
He frowns. Try again.
âI adore them, the palace always has the most gorgeous petals all year round.â You smile at him, hoping it masks any discomfort you feel.Â
The smile returns to his own lips as he begins to walk. Tilting his head to you as a cue to join him. You try to keep your paces a few behind his own, a maid should never walk beside a member of the family. Though he only slows in response, matching your gate even though it is obvious he hates having to slow down.Â
Why is he behaving in this manner? It makes no sense to you.Â
âThe flower of devotion.â He nods, breaking the silence once more and keeping his eyes straight ahead.Â
You almost want to admire his profileâ the gentle curve of his nose, yet you refrain. Training your eyes ahead, keeping your fingers laced in front of you. Trying to look as put together as possible at this moment.Â
âIs it?â You quiz, unable to take the awkward silence anymore. He doesnât seem to mind it. Unbothered, tucking his hands into the pockets of his loose, flowing sleep pants.Â
âOf many other things, as well.â He nods, sending a slight smile at you.Â
âI donât know much about the language of flowers.â Though it feels wrong to be talking with Prince Kim so casually, you try your best. The more you give in, mayhaps the sooner heâll bore and the faster you will be able to run from the cage.Â
âTell me your favourite, maybe I can tell you its meaning.â He pauses and you find yourself at the foot of the gazebo. He reaches out his hand, offering to help you up the small stairs of it.Â
All over again you find yourself taken aback. The prince is requesting that you touch him, not for his service, but your own. He desires to help you. Is for some reason treating you like a lady.Â
You donât understand it, yet with great hesitation you oblige. You place your hand on his much larger one, allowing it to encase it. Help you up the stairs.
âI donât know manyâŠâ You hope he cannot hear the hesitation in your tone, âThough Iâve always been fond of lilies.â You tell him, attempting to pull your hand away from his own as you reach the top.Â
He doesnât allow it, keeping your small palm tight in his own. Fear trickles in once more, circling around your heart, constricting it.Â
You knew you shouldnât have trusted him in the slightest. It is here where you shall face punishment for all the previous misdemeanours committed. White stone shall be painted with red and you will be left to your own devices to clean up the mess.
Your lungs start to take in more air, though of course you try to disguise it. Turning around to face him, to discover why he has kept you held firm, air is leaving your lungs for another reason entirely.Â
He holds your hand close, examining your fingers. Tilting it back and forth, smoothing his thumb over the back of your skin. If he takes note of the little dots of red, he doesnât make comment of it. He only curls his fingers upwards, hooking against your own. Bringing your hand up to his lips as if it was the most delicate thing on earth. Staring at them with a passion you doubt youâve ever seen before.
âRebirth.â His breath fans across your knuckles, slowly lowering to place a gentle kiss against the skin. His lips are soft, so gentle against your weary flesh. So full of safety, so full of song.
When he retracts, he pulls away no more than a millimeter, though his grip tightens.Â
âPurity.â
Your first meeting with the prince had left you with a flurry of emotions, none of which you could hope to syphon through. For hours he kept you in the gazebo, sitting with you. Talking until it appeared the sun was cresting over the horizon.Â
He refused to release your hand the entire time. His fingers playing with your own, perhaps obsessed with the feeling of your tiny hand laced with his own pristine skin. Did not pay any attention the several times you tried to excuse yourself, only changing the subject of conversation to try and keep you in place.
It was strange. Confusing. You did not understand the reasoning or cause behind any of his actions.Â
Well, at least until the next morning while you were scrubbing the floors. Your friend Annabell cleaning right by your side. Catching up, gossiping about the new recruits found in the manner. It is only times like these when you actually get the chance to talk, to giggle with someone meant to be your equal in both age and house status.Â
The only chance youâre truly able to forget about the fact she is able to leave once her contract expires. But it does not matterâ any small amount of spite you hold is slashed away by her kind smile. The understanding in her eyes as she treats you like just another maid set to work for the king instead of a captive.Â
It is only after the 7th yawn of the morning she asks about the poorly covered bags under your eyes. You had gone to bed with the rest of the girls, there is no reason you should be so tired. You never appear to be, at least it is not shown around others.
You struggle with yourself for a moment, trying to decide whether the night before was meant to be kept as a closely guarded secret to your chest. Yet one look at your closest confidant had you spilling everything.Â
The entire nightâ the stars, the flowers, the way he prattled on. How tight he gripped your dirty, calloused hand against his pristine soft ones.Â
You feel strange speaking of it, remembering it in any way. It causes your cheeks to heat and a fury to settle below your ribs.Â
It is a strange feeling, yet not an entirely unwanted one.Â
Your eyes train to the floor as you spill your soul, unable to keep it in once it starts pouring out. You try to keep your tone as neutral as possibleâ to tell her about the night as if it was a simple news story you heard from a guard. Though, youâre unsure of your success in the matter.Â
A poised laugh leaves the lips of your counter, her eyes cresting into half-moons.Â
âYou cannot be serious right? You tell stories.â She giggles, shaking her head before continuing her assault on the floor.Â
You simply shake your own.Â
âIt happened, I was as shocked in the moment as you seem to be now.â She lets out a small bellow of giggles once again.Â
âNo, no. I believe it happened entirely. Iâm only talking about the fluster of your face.â She giggles, lifting her rag and shaking it for dramatic effect. You roll your eyes, cracking a small smile.
âThere is no such thing.â You laugh knowing that there is.Â
âOh my heavens. Y/n, you cannot tell me youâve grown fond of the Prince, have you?â Her words are hushed now, much more so than before. As if someone may be listening to the conversation.Â
You tense in reply, unsure of the answer yourself. The closest youâve ever felt to fondness of another man was a stable boy a few years back. Only 17 at the time, head wrapped in romance novels that you didnât entirely understand. He was handsome and he was kind. However just as you were starting to become closer to him, he was sent away to work at another palace.Â
You had not been optimistic since then.
She takes your silence as an answer in itself. Moving towards you, gripping your shoulders and hauling you to sit on your haunches. Forcing you to look at her face as she speaks.Â
âYou cannot be serious.â She repeats again, hoping for any sign of doubt. All she receives is bewilderment in reply, âY/n. You can never trust Prince Kim.âÂ
You sigh, âI know, Anne, Iââ Youâre cut off with her own voice again.
âNo, not in the way youâre imagining.â She sighs, letting her hands drop from your shoulders to continue scrubbing at the floor. Making work of herself as she speaks, âThe other maids donât tell you of much, do they?âÂ
You canât deny it. Your seclusion within the castle walls is only partly of your own design.Â
Other maids do not feel as though they can trust you, seeing as you are full property of the crown. In their eyes, you hold not a crumb of loyalty to your own kind. Few maids speak to you like Annabell does for fear the second they say anything wrong you are going to tell the world.Â
You would never, though your word is worth its weight in feathers to them.
âThey donât care for me as you do⊠noâŠâ You admit, continuing to clean as well. She already knew the answer, letting out an exhale before she speaks.
âPrince Kim has a pension for⊠debauchery⊠I shall say,â She flinches at her own words, yet doesnât know a better way to put it, âThe variety in which he uses pretty words to seduce young ladies to bed with him. Royalty from other lands, generalâs daughters, maids. It matters not. He likes them for the night then pretends they shall never exist again.âÂ
Each word she speaks sends another stab into your gut. A dull pain blooming from the same places which a swirling was forming before.Â
Ah. It all makes sense now.Â
âOh.â
âHe has a particular fondness for the other maids, you know. Bedding them without a second thought.â A grimace forms on your friend's lips, scrubbing harder into the already shining floors, âThere is no reason to form any sort of affection for that man. It will only end with his seed inside your core and a knife in your heart.âÂ
Yes, everything she is saying makes perfect sense. You feel almost stupid to not see it before. Maybe you just didnât want to see itâ want to think about it in any sort of fashion. But this makes much more sense than the crown prince wanting to speak to you for any other purpose. Explains why he was acting as a true gentleman to someone so much lower than him.Â
However, you find that it does not take away the cavernous pit that has formed in your gut.Â
âI see, I have no desire for either.â You nod your head in understanding, not sure of what else to say. âI donât understand why heâs taken an interest in me, though.âÂ
She gawks, âI donât understand why it has taken him so long to in the first place.â She shakes her head.
âNevertheless, it doesnât matter. Y/n, you must promise me. You will not fall for him, nor give any part of yourself to him. He is not someone that will care for you like you deserve.â She states, blue eyes piercing icicles into your own. She is determined and will not relent until you agree.
âI do not wish to. Not after hearing all ofâŠâ You make some sort of motion with your hand, âthat. Anyone would be a fool to like him.âÂ
You nod your head while Annabell smiles in agreement.Â
âGood.âÂ
Those are the last words you exchange with anyone for hours. The rest of the day passed by with lightning, an endless turnstile of things to take care of. A ball was to be held soon meaning the castle would be a wreck for the next few days. Too much planning, cleaning, sewing, coordination had to take place before anyone could rest.Â
Honestly, you were grateful for it. A break from thinking was much needed. As is a good nightâs rest.Â
You sigh, already imagining how lovely it would feel to pull off your shoes for the day. Peel the cotton off your body and replace your dress with something more comfortable.Â
Oo! Hopefully enough warm water will be left for a quick bath. That would be just wonderful, your muscles would be able to unfurl. The perfect thing to lull you into a glorious sleep.
Your arms stretch over your head as you finish descending the staircase into the maid hallways. Bones in your back pop from the pressure, causing a sigh to make its way from your lungs. Your nimble fingers make their way to the ribbon holding your hair in place, untying it and allowing the tresses to fall.Â
Soon you would be in the maid resting quartersâ your appearance would matter not there anyway.Â
You send small smiles to other staff members passing you, those that have either just woken for the night or those who still have work to do. Yet in return, each one of them just stares at you with an incredulous look. Turning and whispering to their friends as if you were not still in front of them.Â
You canât help to understand why. Those around you may not have considered you a friend, but they were never rude. Always polite when need be. It has you feeling strange, some type of nervousness as you get closer and closer to the hallway extending to the maids personal rooms.Â
Rounding the corner, you discover exactly why.Â
His frame looks entirely out of place standing there. A perfect, pristine picture in a hallway of drab, illuminated only by the lanterns hanging on the wall. Royal blue tunic draped on his shoulders only emphasising his status.Â
He looks as though he was never meant to be here. Like a mistake was made along the cobblestone walls. No, he looks as though he is meant to be among the living. Not in your dreary, windowless life. Nothing could change that.Â
You stand there frozen, a deer caught in the lanturn of a hunting party. A pounding of your heart, as well as the dark swell of your gut coming back to life. Why is he here? Why the hell does he have a bouquet of flowers?!
You wish to scream, but you donât. You have already been caught.Â
His eyes look up from where he created a small pile of dirt on the floor. His face coming alight in an instant, pushing himself to full stature from where he once leaned against the wall. Long legs making their way towards you while he suddenly has the decency to hide the bouquet behind his back.Â
Annabell certainly did not mention this method of Prince Kimâs seduction. You had never seen him down here before.Â
âHi.â Is all he says once he is finally face to face with you. His face bright and youthful. Excited.
It seems all formalities have been dropped in his mind, though you refuse the notion.Â
âPrince Kim.â You simply reply, lowering yourself in a curtsy.Â
He pays no mind, almost pretending you never did it in the first place. Instead, he simply rocks back and forth on his heels, bouncing slightly in delight. Wanting something, unable to voice it.Â
âTo what do I owe the pleasure?â You ask, hoping to end the encounter swiftly to stop all of the prying eyes leering into your being.Â
âI brought you something.â His eyes do not break contact with yours once and you can see his hand twitch by his side as if it wants to reach out for something. You're glad he has the decency to hold back, so you shall do the same by pretending you never saw the flowers in the first place.Â
You choose not to ask yourself why he brought you a present. It must just be a trick of seduction.
âI am honoured to accept such a thing.â You send a small smile his way, something between real and fake. It seems to make him beam.Â
His arm comes out from behind, holding the flowers between both of your bodies. You look down at them, shock written across your features.Â
Sure, you had noted them as flowers before. But you think these may be the prettiest ones youâve seen in your whole life. Petals of orange, white, and purple cloud in your eyes. Stomatas filled with the sweet pollen.
Lilies. All different kindsâ ones youâve never seen before.
Theyâre out of season, at least you think they are. How did he get these? Why is he giving them to you? Why is he trying to get the butterflies to return? Why is he trying to make your heart explode?
âPrince KimâŠâ Youâre not sure what to sayâ instead gently reaching out to feel the velvet of a petal. Staring intently at their colours, unable to pull your eyes away.Â
âTheyâre beautiful, arenât they?â His voice is a husk of a whisper, as if youâre the only two in the hallway. As if other maids are not passing, as if they are not staring at the two of you.
âYes⊠I⊠Iâm not sure what to say.â It is all so hypnotic.Â
âThank you would be a good beginning, no?â His smile is soft, a light chuckle present in the tone.
You pause, tilting your head to look up at him fullyâ a large, real smile donning your lips.
âYes. Thank you.âÂ
You feel as if you are floating, just as you would when reading those romance books in your late teen years. Like the world has stopped moving save for the prince in front of you slowly passing the flowers into your arms.Â
Your hands brush against each other and you feel his fingers twitch, tightening ever so slight. Wishing to grab onto your hand just as he had done the night before. Wishing to insect every line that traces over your fresh once more.
However, he refrains. Allowing his ringed fingers to sink themselves into his pockets.
âI was just going to have them delivered. Iâm not really meant to be down here, you know,â His smile is shy, âBut I didnât know your room. That, and I wanted to see you again.âÂ
You look down, unable to keep the eye contact he presses you for. Prince Kim is too much for you. You donât understand how he couldnât be too much for anyone.Â
âOhâŠâ Youâre a flush, âThank you for saying that.âÂ
âIt is nothing to thank me for.â He chuckles, bangs dimming the hues of his eyes, âIâm sure I bored you with all of my ramblings.âÂ
He did, partly, but that was more discombobulation for the situation and a sense of tiredness creeping into your bones. You shake your head quickly.
âOf course not. I had.. Fun.â Mayhaps fun isnât the right term, yet there is no word that exactly describes your emotions of last night, nor the ones of today.
âAs did I.â His lips are tight in a smile again, feet bouncing on their heels once more. Heâs nervous, wants to say something again but isnât sure how.
Youâre not sure how to feel about learning what that habit means. Not sure how to feel about what any of this means. You have not had a moment alone to truly dissect what all of it is.Â
âI would love to spend the night talking to you again, if you would allow me.â You donât think you would love anything more, yet you know you would not be able to function. Would probably make a fool of yourself, too.Â
âI-I think it would be best if I were to get some rest⊠I had not even an hour before I had to start working last night.âÂ
He frowns, âThatâs not good for your healthâŠâ He pauses, searching your face for any signs of distress, âThen let's talk in your room. I will only stay until you sleep.âÂ
You pause, air drifting back into your lungs.
Ah. Right.Â
The words of your friend sink in once again, breaking you out of whatever trance he had put you under. Whatever spell he laced through both of your ears to have you singing songs of praises for him and the crown.Â
He wants you as a notch in a bedpost. Nothing more. It is clear as day and you are a fool to think anything other than that. This is all just a cleverly rehearsed show. You will not fall victim like your mother.Â
All royalty is the same. Use use use. Beat a dead horse until it stops coughing up any sort of reprise.Â
Your posture is suddenly tense, fist gripping the flowers so tight your knuckles appear white.Â
How dare he think so low of you. How dare he think he might be able to fuck you for nothing.Â
âMen are not allowed in the women's private quarters.â Your voice is staunch, though it is not as if he can tell nor cares.Â
If he does, he doesnât show it.Â
âAh,â The lilt is still evident in his tone, the cat playing with the mouse, âBut I am not any man, am I?â His body leans a bit closer, pulling his face parallel to your own. Smirk playing on his lips.Â
Beauty is a deceptive thing, isnât it? âWhen I am king Iâll make it so I can see you whenever we both desire.â Something heats in your gut at those words, yet anger quells it just as fast.Â
âIt is a shame that you are not King yet, then.â You nod politely in his direction, trying to excuse yourself. Yet your words only seem to excite something in his eyes, lighting a fire behind them.Â
âMy, I didnât know you felt that way.â He smiles coy. A flustered sensation overcomes you as you realise the double meaning behind your words. You had made it sound like you wanted him in that way when that could not be farther from the truth.
âI do not.â You state, your voice ice. Though once again, it seems that it does not pierce him.Â
âThere is no reason to be so cold, Y/n.â He sing songs, tapping one of his long fingers against the side of his head.Â
âI am not being cold! You are just not listening.â You sigh in exasperation. Exhaustion and annoyance make you forget yourself, causing your volume to rise just as his own does. This only seems to excite him more.Â
âI have heard enough.â He giggles, boyish and what others would describe as cute. Right before youâre able to argue back once again, he cuts in with his own voice once more.
âI will leave you for now. Find a pretty place for the flowers.âÂ
He smiles generously at you, beginning to walk away, âHave a good night. Iâll see you soon.âÂ
In your shamble of a disposition, youâre left stuck there. Staring at his back as he retreats down the hallway.Â
The shock of everything that had just transpired coming over you all at once. How poorly you had behaved. How you spoke to him. He could have you killed for any one of those things however instead he left you with a bouquet of flowers and a promise for another night.Â
You scramble to find yourself, to move yourself from out of the eyeline of every other maid. To make your way to your room, your one sanctuary as quickly as possible.Â
It is only when youâre in those walls, hard oak door shut firmly beside you that you have to remind yourself of your promise to your best friend. Remember that the prince fights his battles with words and emotions.Â
Your second meeting with the man had left you even more confused than the first. Thousands of questions and emotions real through your bones at a pace your brain canât manage to understand. Leaves you fuming, trying to form a single coherent thought as you analyse the last two nights with a ferocity unimagined.Â
In your state, however, you neglect to think of the one question that should be dancing before you, held on a string just out of reach.Â
Why did he know your name?Â
It is apparent that since that night, Prince Kim has located which room you find habitance in.Â
This morning, another letter has found itself slipped under the base of your door. They have become commonplace nowâ letters detailing apologies for why he was unable to visit, what he had gone about on his day, his regrets that he has not heard back from you in what feels like ages.Â
Heâs tried to speak to you a few times in the palace when you work. His eyes always trained on you with something youâre unable to describe when you clean nearby.Â
You wish you could say it was perverse in manner, but it was nothing of the sort.Â
Every once and awhile you would catch a lily pinned to his breast pocket. He would send you a secret smile whenever it caught your attention. As if it was a tale meant for only the two of you to know. As if he wanted to carry a portion of you with him.
You may be naive in saying so, nor do you have much experience in the matter, but these do not feel like the actions of a man who simply wishes to find home under your dress. These feel more personal. More extravagant than anything else.Â
Nevertheless, you ignore every single advance. Annabell made you promise, and it was a promise you were intent on keeping until your dying breath.Â
Put the letters away in a box, never to be responded to. Avoided looking at him whenever he was near. Rushed out of rooms when it appeared he was intent on making his war for you.
Icing out the prince is what is best. Whatever lilies he will wilt and die and you will be able to continue on with your hatred of the Kim family as well as your blood pact with the throne.Â
You only wish it was that easy.
âY/n!! Miss Y/n!!â There is a scramble outside of the door, voices hailing for your presence. You donât know whyâ youâre on wash duty. Anyone, unless theyâre extraordinarily new, would know that.Â
The voice grows more erratic, more panicked. As if their life depends on finding you in that very moment. The other maids in the quarters send their glaces to you, urging you to go yet not one opens their mouths.Â
At least one bonus of endenturing your entire life to the palace is that you have grown in rank. More than 10 years has granted you a decent position.Â
A hushed sigh slips past your lips and your hands find themselves forcing the pile of sheets into the washing tub. Your hands quickly wipe away at your apron, ridding them of any moisture before pushing open the door.Â
Stepping into the hallway lined with stone you notice only a single girl. Her entire form shaking as she paces the hallâ panicked. Blonde curls bouncing with every step, cheeks a fluster.Â
A new recruit, indeed. Celley is the name she wears.Â
She had just entered with the last batch of new maids, starting at the palace no more than 2 months ago. She was a recruit you were unsure ofâ not having a lick of grace or balance, nor any experience with serving. But you suppose there are many reasons maids are chosen.Â
You do not like to think of them.
Her feet are suddenly clamouring over to you, noticing your presence for the first time since youâve stepped in the hallway. Her small, shaking hands grip your shoulders, holding you with all the will she seems to possess.Â
âExcuse me have you seenââ She stops herself, tiny pants pausing as her eyes go wide, âOh my days! Miss Y/n! You must hurry!â She rushes, hand gripping your wrist as she tries to pull you away.Â
Though your face twists in confusion, your feet remain firm.Â
âWhatâs the matter?â You ask, both sympathy and concern entering your frame. You can admonish her later for her lack of manners, however now, the girl seems truly frightened. Her large steel eyes looking back at you, pleading.Â
âThe crown prince! Heâs!â Sheâs out of breath once again, continuing to try and urge you on.
This time, the second the word prince is muttered, you begin to follow her pace, âHeâs lost his mind! Heâs going on a firing spree! Locking up anyone who tries to calm him!âÂ
âWhat? Why is that? Did something happen?â You ask hushed, urging the girl to keep her voice down. Though you both are similar in age, it is apparent who has experienced this type of thing before.Â
âHe got into some kind of spat with his father. His instructor was fired when he tried to continue on with their lesson.â It seems she understood your message, continuing to hurry you down the halls.Â
âAnd what am I meant to do?âÂ
âI-I donât know!â She lets out a quiet yelp, pulling you closer as you exit the maid hallways and enter the palace ones, âHis personal maid is away visiting family. She said to leave everything to you if something were to happen! I-I didnât know what else to do!âÂ
Damn Eleanor and everything she stands for. Why the hell did she have to bring your name into this?! Shouldnât the head maid be called in times like this?! Not you, someone who wants nothing to do with any member of the royal family. Especially the crown prince himself. Sure, there must be rumours spreading around but you had managed nearly three weeks without speaking to him!
You let out a sigh, squaring your shoulders in an attempt to appear more confident, more put together. You will do this, and you will come out victorious. Every battle before has left you victor. What is one more?
âI understand. It will be dealt with.â
The least you can gain is the idyllic picture of the prince to be shattered forever. That would be the most ideal outcome, something to truly force him out of your heart for good. You will not fall prey to him and his earthly desires. He will not win your heart.Â
At least that is what you hope.Â
The throne room's doors stand before you, delicate lacings of gold worth more than your entire being etched into its surface. A glittering picture for what is sure to be a bloodbath behind its contents.Â
A deep inhale of warm air fills your lungs, hand pressing against the door as you force it open. Face someone you have not wanted to see nor extinguish the flames of in nearly a month.Â
He stands before you, 20 paces ahead. A broken bottle in his hand as he heaves, shoulders rising and falling with the passion of ten thousand suns. The look of murder in his eyes as he stares down at a maid, her form on the ground. Bowing with as much might as she can possess, looking for any exit possible. Few other maids stand around the room, keeping their heads low, avoiding any eye contact possible.Â
Though he looks like a mad manâ mayhaps a god of war himself, not a single hair is out of place on his head. He is still the picture of sovereignty. And though your breath spikes, you find that you are not afraid.Â
What a strange feeling it is.
The creak of the door sends single to him, has him whipping his head to face you. Anger etched into his features, a new target befalling his sight.
You stand tall, moving towards him. You will rise to the position given to you, even if it shall mean your inevitable downfall. As long as the new staff are safe.
Only, when he looks to you, no wrath is found. No anger or deceit. The second his eyes meet your own, his expression drops along with the bottle in his hands. More glass littering the floor in its wake.Â
His eyes soften, his lips turning from a sneer into a gentle frown. His shoulders automatically lower, and suddenly it appears that there is no one else in the room. His legs move automatically, carrying themselves to you with such a hurried pace you would have thought he had seen a long lost friend.Â
Oddly, this scares you more than when he was angered.Â
You start into a bow, âPrince Kim, Iâve come in place ofââÂ
His arms wrap themselves around you before you can speak another word. Pulling you in, wrapping you into his scent as you're pressed against his sturdy chest. Strong arms keep you in place as he tries to make his body become one with your own.Â
His face buries itself into the crook of your neck, one hand raising to tie itself in your hair. It forces you to stay in place, stay attached to him just the way he wants you to be. Allows him to inhale, breathing in all of you. Finally delving into the scent that he has been craving.
Your eyes only widen, hands staying firm at your side in shock. Heart beginning to race, head becoming lost in the soaps that only a member of a family could possibly own.Â
Youâre not sure what to do. How to behave. As far as you are concerned or aware, this is something that no other has had happen before. At least not so openly. Not so brazenly in front of a myriad of other people.Â
But, it seems to calm him. To placate him in a way youâre not sure anyone could explain.Â
You try to make a small twisting motion with your hand, try to urge everyone else to leave while they have the chance.Â
They seem to take it, exiting the room as fast as possible.Â
Youâre sure word of this will spread throughout the castle quickly. You hope the consequences will not be dire.Â
âPrince Kimââ You begin to speak after everyone has cleared out, after he holds you for what feels like a lifetime. You canât find it in you to want him to pull away, no matter how embarrassing this seems.Â
âShh,â He quickly silences you with a gentle press of his lips to your pulse, âLet me stay like this for a moment.âÂ
You are unable to move. Unable to breathe after he kisses you. War could begin in that very moment and youâre not sure you would have noticed in the slightest. You are stunned into obeying his whim as he simply inhales and exhales.Â
The umber in his voice only comes after a millennia, after his shoulders have completely sagged. After all the tension is removed from his body.Â
âYou didnât respond to my letters.â He still doesnât pull away, his grip on your hair tightening a fraction.Â
You pause.
âIâŠI didnât know where to send them.â You lie and his hand loosens. The correct answer.Â
âMy study. Put them under the door to my study.â He instructs like a king would.Â
Youâre not sure why the tone of his voice sends shocks to your gut. Pooling into something you only find in your dreams.
âBut if someone were to see themââÂ
âLet them.â Mumbles in your ear to you and you alone, a growl practically spiking through his voice, âI want them to know.âÂ
Oh. This is new. This is definitely new. This is not the same way you felt with the stable boy years ago. This has become something entirely alienating. A completely different beast. You know that now as his baritone voice sends waves straight through your gut.Â
You simply nod in reply, your mouth unwilling to say anything back. The arm around your lower back grows more firm.
âTell me where you will put your replies.â He commands into your ear.Â
âUnder the door to your study.â Your reply is automatic, years of answering to the kingdom evident in your tone.Â
He sighs, unfurling his fingers from your locks to gently pet the top of your head, âGood girl.â
He presses a kiss to your forehead, soft as he touches you.
âGood lamb.â
You sigh, fingers deftly searching through your wardrobe for just a single pair of underwear. But once again, you turn up empty. It seems like every day that passes, another pair disappears without your knowledge.Â
Perhaps one of the new girls is causing a fuss, messing up the laundry for everyone else.Â
That is the only logical solution, at least.Â
But logic doesnât seem to make much sense at all anymore. You couldnât hope to understand why few of your other belongings have come up indignant as well.Â
Your favourite perfume, one of your stuffed animals, even your toothbrush! All have magically vanished from thin air over the course of the last week.Â
It is too bad that you havenât had the time to think about it, either. Preparations for the ball have been raging throughout the palace. Everyone has been on their toes, unwilling to face the wrath of the planners as they try to make everything perfect.Â
You have had not one moment alone to think, either swept up in cleaning, decorating, or well⊠recently you and the prince have been going on walks through the garden at night. Though that doesnât matter much. It doesnât mean anythingâ just another thing he made you promise to. Claiming he wishes to spend as much time with you as he can.Â
His recent fixation is trying to get you to call him by his true name.Â
You would never dare, nothing is more inappropriate than such a title. It is something only his most beloved is meant to call him, and that person is certainly not you.
You try to force any thoughts of him out of your head, though it is clearly a fruitless endeavour. Especially with the dream you had the night prior.Â
His hands finding themselves between your legs, touching you in a way no other has.Â
You flush, quickly shaking all thoughts of the night away.Â
The tea! Your tea, yes. A prescription from the doctor for this very thing.
More often than not, you wake to find a mess between your thighs. Sticky arousal between them in a perverse fashion. The region sensitive and overstimulated combined with a mess of dreams. More sexual in nature than ever before.
Embarrassed, you had turned to the only person you could trust. The palace staffâs doctor.Â
She had told you it was normalâ that you were simply having what she described as âwet-dreamsâ. The title alone made you feel embarrassed.
Nevertheless, she prescribed you a tea to help calm your nerves. It was meant to be passifying in nature, calming any lush desires you may have beginning to form.Â
You were not sure how it functioned, however you trusted her. Found that it quelled whatever fire burned inside of your heart for the time being.Â
Perhaps just a new oddity to add to your reality, you suppose.Â
Finally, you find a proper set of undergarments to pull over your legs. Letting out a breath in relief now that you finally have them.Â
Today is going to be busier than the last month combinedâ the ball is tonight. You know for a fact you will be rushed around the palace all day, fixing everything into an acute sense of perfection that only the Kim family is known for.Â
You reach to spray your second favourite perfume across your skin, only to find that the bottle has gone missing as well.
Your hairs stand on edge, a dark pit forming in your stomach.
It is all too strange for you to want to understand.Â
Okay, now youâre sure Annabell must be wrong. She has to be, right? There is no other conclusion possible.Â
The thoughts run through your head as you pace the small confines of your room. Thumb between your lips, biting the skin feverishly. Contemplating what it is exactly that you should do. A heavy box sitting on your bed, a letter laying next to it along with a single lily.
A month ago, you met Prince Kim in the gardens. A month ago you spoke to him all night long. A month ago he brought you flowers. He has been leaving you letters ever since. Three weeks ago he held you in his arms, made you promise to write him back. Made you promise to meet him in the gardens as many nights as you can.Â
But this, you could not accept. You could not possibly think this is real. Why has he gifted you something like this?
A dress lays on your bed. The most gorgeous dress you have ever seen, in fact. Lined with crystals and gems, many layers of tulle poof from the underskirt. It mustâve cost a fortune, but it was not meant for you. It is a dress meant for a princess, not a simple maid of the palace. Not⊠Not someone the prince simply wanted to bed.Â
So why did it lie here, along with a lace mask and a pair of shoes. Why did it come with a note from the Prince, telling you to put it on for tonight's events? Is this why the head maid dismissed you so early?
No. You could not. You will not make a fool of yourself. You do not belong up there, dressed as a princess when you are far from the thing. That is your decision. It will be the one you stick to.
Even as hours tick past on the clock, even as you can hear the night in full swing, you stay locked in your room. Feeling the same as you did when you were a girl locked in the dungeon all those years ago. Helpless, indignant, stubborn.Â
Lost in your thoughts as you try to piece together a puzzle that has several spaces missing. Feelings for the stable boyâ life with him, it would have been easier than this. Youâre sure of it.Â
You allow yourself to imagine what life could have been like if he stayed. It would have been a cosy, peaceful. A straightforward one that didnât leave so many questions in your head. Jungkook was always like that, spoke his mind without leaving anything to be guessed. You adored it, wished you could revel in it now. Wish you could kiss him under the cherry tree once more.
A pounding wakes you from the dream you were just beginning to weave. Loud, angry knuckles against the firm oak of your door startling you to your feet in an instant. Chills running down your spine as if your body already knew who was behind it.Â
You wait too long to reply, another series of rapts following in quick succession. Youâre in trouble. Youâve angered the prince in a way youâre not sure youâll be able to find your way out of, but you have no choice. He knows your inside. You know you must face him. You must be brave.
Right before another series of knocks can echo against the walls, you finally pull the door open.Â
There stands the man you knew would be there all along, sculpted like the lord had made him himself. You wish you could behold him properly, to stare at his beauty in the suit specially prepared for this night. One he asked your opinion of several times during its construction.
But you are unable to, not when his shoulders heave like a bull planning its charge. Not when his eyes are narrowed into a glare that enters your soul without consequence. Never before had you felt his anger directed at you.Â
The future king would be a fearsome thing.Â
âIt appears you are not dead.â He states, cold and detached in a way you have never heard before. It makes you feel small, feel weak. Though by now, you know he wants an answer. He will not accept the lack of one from you anymore.Â
You shift uncomfortably on your feet, âI suppose notâŠâÂ
âThen what do you suppose.â You flinch. Youâre not sure.
âIâ Prince KimâŠâÂ
âTaehyung.â He interjects, though you ignore him. Only his future wife is meant to call him by that name.
âPrince Kim, I could not possibly accept this gift. You have to understand.â The way he looks at you makes you want to shrink. To appear as small as possible to placate the lion youâve wondered into the den of.Â
âI do not. You are to accept any gift I am to give you.â He is stern as if lecturing the ground beneath him. He looks massive in your tiny room, taking up much more space than you wish to grant him.
You begin to grow frustrated, annoyed. Does he have no sanity? Does he really think it is okay to play with the hearts of women so carelessly? It is disgusting. Repulsive even! You do not deserve anything like this. You begin to grow tense, grow firm like a wolf cornered. Ready to lash out with no remorse.Â
That is what you are, anyway. A cornered animal with no hope to escape.Â
âI wonât.â You raise your shoulders, stand taller and stare him straight in the eyes. If this will have you sent to the axe then so be it.Â
He grows just as tense in reply, his lips forming a sneer as he takes a step closer towards you.Â
Never before has Prince Kim been opposed like this before, youâre sure of it. The way his irises become darker is proof.Â
âAnd why is that, lamb?â He mocks, and the fire inside of you only begins to glow brighter Of course, youâre just the lamb that's wandered into the lion's den. The lamb being prepared for meal.Â
Steam clouds around your head, jaw becoming tense as you try to hold back your rage. Rage for your mother, rage for the life she was taunted into the same way the prince is trying to do to you now.
âI will not become another woman you bed and then lay waste to!â You practically shout, unable to hold back your emotions anymore.Â
His nostrils flare, âExcuse me?âÂ
âYou heard my words.â You state back, indignant, âI will not be an idiot. I will not become another woman who you use for your own pleasures!â
You hear him scoff, head turning away from you for the first time as he looks around your room.Â
âYou think that little of me?â His eyes make their way back to you, his face having the expression of somewhat⊠hurt?Â
Suddenly, youâre unsure. You feel stupid all over again though youâre not entirely conscious as to why. You hurt him? How could you possibly hurt the most powerful person in the country?Â
You falter in your stance, and it is obvious that he takes notice. Uses it to his advantage as he takes another step closer, makes his hand find your own. His thumb brushing soothingly over the knuckle. His hands are always so soft.Â
âWhat else am I meant to think? Iâve heard the stories, Prince Kim.â Where once was fire lays blistering coals. Hot to the touch yet unyielding in their passion. The air in the room has changed in much the same way.
âTell me of them.â He asks you, his voice now gentle, soft.Â
It is strange, the complete change heâs had since first entering your room. Has your brain going a little haywire. Especially with the way he stares at your hands. Like they could be locked forever.Â
âIâŠâ You feel flush, embarrassed to mutter the words in front of the prince, âIâve heard you seduce women⊠princesses, noblemenâs daughters, maids⊠the lot. Then you abandon them the next morning with your seed in their core and a knife in their heart.âÂ
You keep your eyes to your feet, face feeling hot by repeating the words of your friend. You refuse to look at him, you cannot take the embarrassment.Â
A light chuckle leaves his lips, a hand coming up to attempt to muffle them, âSorry, sorry.â He shakes his head, a playful glint in his eyes. Youâre baring your soul to him! How dare he laugh!Â
He coughs to muffle the rest of the sound, returning to the moment, âI apologise. I just had the realisation. Youâre jealous of them, arenât you lamb?âÂ
A mess of flutters takes up your stomach, your shoulders raising in alarm. Your lips open to try and form words, to try and deny the allegations made your way, yet you are entirely unable.Â
Especially with the way he moves closer, crowds your space with such ease. Leads close to you, whispers words in your ear, voice lower than before.Â
âYou wish it to just be you I lay with, is that so?â You can practically hear the smile in his voice as another, more erotic chill finds its way down your spine.Â
âTh-That isnâtââ You try to speak, but your voice sounds as light as air. He moves closer, arm carrying itself around your back, pulling you flush against him as he speaks sinful words. Words only for you.Â
âAhâŠâ He sighs in relief, lips practically touching your ear once youâre finally connected to him, âYou donât like it when I go fuck your friends then come to spend my nights talking to you⊠writing to you⊠touching myself to the thought of you.âÂ
You cannot take it. You cannot take this, take him. Your head is spinning, clouding with the drug known as Prince Kim. Your knees feel weak, your limbs feel all too heavy. How can someone so pretty say such sinful words without a second thought. Itâs too much. Far more than your poor little heart can take.
Your arms come up, press as firm as they can against his chest despite how weak they feel.
âMmmâŠ?â He asks in response, pulling back to look down on your face. Mock confusion spread across his features. He takes a step back, pretending to look you up and down. Like he is just playing a game of poker while all of your tells are as clear as day.Â
âOr is that not what you wish?â He asks, head tilted to the side like a confused puppy, âYou would like things to remain the same?â He smiles, drawing conclusions all on his own.Â
He pauses, waits for you to say something, anything before continuing. But you do not, so he will keep playing this game by himself.Â
âThen I shall go find someone to keep me company for the night. Mmm..â He taps his chin in contemplation, turning on his heels, meanwhile panic and dread fills every facet of your being, âWhat were those ones youâre friends with again? Celley? That pretty blonde? Oh, or maybe Annabell. Iâm sure she would be prepared to go for a second round.âÂ
What? What? No, No! What is he talking about? Why is he starting to walk away?! Wait, Annabell, second time?! She has before?!Â
Oh heavens, oh gods.Â
âAnyway, I'll be sure to write to you after. Have a good night, dream of me.â You begin to hyperventilate as he takes one step out the door. No, he canât leave. You donât want him to. You donât want him to be with anybody else. You canât let it happen. You canât afford such a thing! Ever! That is not where he is meant to be!Â
Your body carries you before your mind does. Hand slipping out, gripping onto the back of his coat with all of the strength you can muster. Feet planted firm in your room, doing everything in your power to not let him leave. Â
It is really too bad you do not see the sick smile that forms on his lips. Maybe then the pieces of the puzzle would have finally clicked in place.Â
Instead he only tilts his head backwards, painting a complexion of boredom.
âN-No! I donât want that!â You finally manage to stutter out, knuckles turning white with the strength you hold onto him. Afraid if you let go in the slightest he will pull away and disappear forever. âI donât want you to be with other women!â
The silence that follows your confession feels a mile long.Â
âThen go put on the dress.â Out of any response there could be, that certainly was not the one you were anticipating.Â
âWhatâŠ?âÂ
His chin tilts in the direction of it, urging you on, âIf that is the truth, then go put on the dress.âÂ
âIâŠâ You hesitate for only a moment, but scramble to motion once the prince turns to leave once again.Â
You make quick paces to your bed, keeping your back to him. You feel his eyes on your back, intent on giving you no privacy to ensure you follow through on his order.Â
In fact, all he does is close the door behind you. Making sure no one will be able to see in. No one will be able to watch you save for him.Â
You slowly peel off the cotton of your nightgown, trying to appear brave even though his eyes are trained on your form. Even if your slip still remains on, you have never been this uncovered in front of a man before. You feel entirely bare.Â
You do not look at him as you finally find your way through the tool, slipping the garment over your head with struggle, yet his face is practically predatory.Â
You donât know his plans, or what he wishes to gain. You never do.Â
As the fabric settles over your hips, half of you wants to question how the size is perfect, but you refrain. Too embarrassed by everything else to even consider it an option. Your hands reach behind you to attempt to lace up the back on your own, yet another pair are already present in their place.
When did he get so close? How did he get so close without you hearing a thing? Your heartbeat must be the only sound in your ears, that must be it.Â
His fingers work down your spine, tightening the dress so it fits you perfectly. Tying it off with skill you did not know he had. You feel his breath on the back of your neck. A fire begins to grow in your core.Â
âI was going to present you to my father tonight.â He admits, placing a gentle kiss to the base of your neck, âThe ball was meant to find my bride.âÂ
âOh.â Those are the only words you can say when he is so close, arms enclosing around your waist. Pulling your back flush with his chest.Â
Only words you can manage at the revelation.
âImagine his disappointment, more so my own when the girl I had been speaking to him about did not show.â He grunts, almost as if it hurt him. Guiding your body to stand in front of the full mirror in your room. Askingâ telling you to look at yourself.Â
The sight is strange, yet incredible. The crown prince of the entire nation standing in your bedroom, in the maids quarters. Surrounded by squalor and chaos. Arms wrapped around a maid dressed as if she could be a queen.Â
You look up at him to the best of your ability, regret plastered across your features, âPrince KimââÂ
âTaehyung.âÂ
â--Iâm so sorry.â He does not look you in the eyes. They stay trained ahead, not straying once from the mirror. One hand rubbing small circles into the fabric covering your stomach, the other sliding to your waist.
He touches you without care, without reason. Feeling you against him for all that it is worth.Â
âActions have consequences, that is all. They can come later.â He states plainly, âFor now I just wish to indulge in you.â
He brings his face down, placing it right next to yours. His hand rises, making your chin face the mirror as well.Â
He forces you to make eye contact with him through it, forces you to understand each of his words clearly.Â
âYouâll let me do that, wonât you?âÂ
You take a deep breath, gulping down all the air you can manage. You donât think youâve wanted anything more.Â
With no more than a nod, his lips are on yours.Â
Spinning you around, pressing your back against the mirror. His hands cupping your cheeks with such intensity you fear they may become etched into your skin forever. Keeping your lips closed against his own.Â
His body cages you in, pressing entirely against you. Forming against you in perfect harmony, feeling two souls become one. Feeling each other fully for the first timeâ no pretence or public eye in the way to stop it.Â
His teeth nip at your lower lip, biting in a way that has you opening them in pain. He takes the opportunity to lick his way inside, somehow pushing even closer to your body.Â
Something hard presses against you and the discovery has your knees wishing to collapse.Â
The prince canât possibly be this big. He simply canât.
The kiss has you reeling, unsure of anything. Unsure of what to do at all. It is nothing like your first kiss under the cherry tree with Jungkook. That was soft and sweet, docile as two people discover something new.
This, this is nothing of the sort. It is hungry. It is a beast that has been starved, finally getting its first meal. It is intoxicating. It is needy and desperate in a way that has your fingers trying to press themselves even deeper into the glass. It has your breath being robbed. Your lifeforce wilts away to satisfy only the prince.Â
The groan he lets out as you finally give into him, finally allow him to take control of the kiss as arousal pools in your gut. It is one of the most deadly sirenâs calls you think youâve ever heard. One that would have any woman throwing themselves overboard for just a taste.Â
âFinally,â He grunts, pulling no more than a millilitre away from your lips, wetness still connecting them, âMy whole life Iâve been waiting for you.â He mumbles, hungrily connecting his mouth back to your own.Â
Before you know it, youâre lost in the man once again. Allowing him to move you, to guide you to your bed without withdrawing from you once. Tangling your fingers into his hair, trying to make sure he doesnât pull away. Making you drunk off of his taste, off of him.Â
When he kisses you like this, youâre not sure youâll ever be able to live without him.Â
Your knees hit the frame of your bed and all of a sudden you're falling backwards onto its plush lining. Panting, trying to regain some of the air he stole from you.
For the first time youâre able to look up at him, to discover the mess that he has become. Cheeks red, lips swollen. Eyes dark and twisted with lust. Hair ruffled messily from where your fingers laid. Shoulders rising and falling with effort as he catches his breath as well.Â
He looks gorgeous and you canât help yourself hoping this will be only a sight for you forever.Â
He leans down, pecking your lips once more, âI couldnât stop myself from imagining this. Since the moment I placed an order for your dress.âÂ
He huffs, dropping to his knees in front of you. You sit up on your elbows, face twisted into confusion as you look down at him.Â
God. It is too dangerous to look at him right now. You know that as another wave of heat runs straight to your core.
âPushing up the future queen's skirt.â He groans, hands gaining purchase on your hips, pulling you down so your waist sits at the edge of the bed, âLetting myself have a taste of her while everyone else at the party danced.âÂ
O-Oh. Oh. He sees you as, oh god.Â
His fingers bunch in the material of your skirt, drawing in a shaky inhale as he holds onto any drop of sanity left.Â
When he sees no hesitation from you, he slowly begins to push the material up your legs. Eyes trained on your own, looking to you for any sign of discomfort.Â
âHave her come undone on my tongue while no else was the wiser.â He groans as he finally comes face to face with your panty covered core.Â
Your brain moves at a snail's pace, trying to keep up with every tiny movement the prince makes. Trying to process his words while your head becomes fuzzy with your own arousal.Â
You feel like mush, so pliable in his grip.
His large hands slowly begin to part your thighs, to look at what he has been craving for so long when your brain catches up with you, embarrassment overcoming your being.Â
âY-You canât! I-it is dirty to do such a thing.â At least, that is what you had been taught. Though, the look in his eyes and the growl from his throat tells you the opposite.
âYou could never be dirty. No part of you could ever be.â The sound he lets out is more akin to an animal than anything else, and suddenly you feel like a schoolgirl. Flustered and embarrassed beyond anything else.Â
The muscles of your thighs untense, the look on your face blushed and biting.Â
âYou will let me?â He asks again, and despite your embarrassment, you nod. He is going to be king⊠his word is rule afterall. He wishes it, so it will happen. You could not be more pleased to oblige.Â
His grip on your thighs is more firm than before, blunt nails digging into soft flesh as he pries your legs apart. He lets a groan resonate from the back of his throat at the sight. Panties sticking to your center, wetness pooling just behind causing the material to almost become transparent before him.Â
You did not know it was possible for a man to have such an effect on you.Â
Without a second thought, he pushes the material down your thighs. His tongue licking a long stripe up your cunt, savouring the flavour for every cent it is worth.Â
He moans at the taste, not wasting a second before he dives back in. Lapping against you like it is his last meal.Â
A mewl leaves your lips, too many feelings crossing you at once for any of them to be worth anything.Â
Embarrassment, shame, fear all vanish the moment his lips wrap around your clit, sucking against the small bundle of nerves in a manner that has your back arching against the bed. Fingertips digging into the sheets to find a second lease on life.Â
You try to look down at him, to find him between all of your small pants of pleasure, however he is gone. Disappearing until the layers of fabric while he brings you sensations you never thought were possible.Â
His tongue moves like it is made to pleasure only you. Taking turns flicking your clit to lowering into your center. Licking up any bit of arousal he can make out. Trailing up once again to press flat against the bundle of nerves.
All of it has your legs kicking, your breath melting.Â
He is not quiet either, letting you know exactly how much he adores this. Adores the feeling of your thighs wrapped tight around his head. Adores every little sound and reaction you have to give him. Adores the taste of you on his tongue. It was only meant for him.
It feels like he has been wishing to do this far longer than you would ever know. Consuming you whole from the inside out. Causing you to become addicted, to desire him just as much as he carnally craves you.
His nails dig into the flesh of your thighs as your hips begin to rock against his face, seeking out every ounce of pleasure that he is willing to give you. Your adorable mewls and whines grow louder, peaking every time he sucks on your clit.Â
A coil has begun to form in your gut, feeling as though it could snap at any second. You wish you could see him, to look at his face and see the crazed gleam in his eyes. Observe the exact look on his face as he licks your cunt.Â
You try to picture it. Try to imagine the way he would look up at you from between your legs. The dark umber his eyes would become, the gentle circles he would rub into your thigh as you finally make eye contact.Â
Your walls clench around his tongue, sending a new waves of whines out of your mouth. He somehow moves faster, more precisely with every movement. Like he is able to hone in on the exact things that have your thighs quivering.Â
His tongue moves up, takes your small, worn clit into his mouth. Alternating between sucking against it, flicking at it, and pressing against it firm with the flat of his tongue.Â
Without warning, nor any reprise, one of his thick fingers is thrust into your wet heat. Filling you in a way you have never been able to do to yourself. Stretching you. And all of a sudden, youâre flying off the edge of a precipice.
âPrince Kim!â Your back arches off of the bed, head thrown back against the mattress as you let out a moan. Your hips jolt, cunt squeezing around his fingers, heels digging into the floor as you come undone before him.Â
He works you through it with ease and grace, finger slowly thrusting in and out. Tongue firmly planted against your clit to ride you through your high.Â
It would not be your last of the night. He must be gentle.Â
Slowly, you relax against the bed, chest heaving from exertion. He pulls away from you, standing to full height before leaning over your shaking form.Â
Your arousal coats his face, a sheen from his lips and chin evident against the soft yellow glow of the room. He looks down at you, concern and adoration written across his features. Though in his eyes, it appears that the beast has yet to be quelled.Â
He leans down, pressing a gentle kiss to your lips. You taste yourself against them.Â
âYou are delicious. I wish to eat you every night until I die.â He mumbles against your lips, his knee sliding between your legs. Muscle pressing against your swollen cunt.Â
You try to flinch away, yet the hand on your hip keeps you in place.Â
He will not have you running away.Â
Not now.Â
Your cheeks flush at his words, wide eyes looking up at him like he is all that matters.Â
He is.Â
He presses his knee further against your pussy while his lips trail down the column of your neck. Urging you towards the headboard with no words spoken until your head is against the pillows.Â
Your arms wind their way around his neck, keeping him in place, âI-if we were married, I would let you.â You manage to speak, your voice shaky.
He only smiles in reply. Fingers digging deeper into your waist as if he is holding himself back.
âThen we shall call this practice for our wedding night.â He smiles, sitting back on his heels.Â
Marriage, wedding night. You allow the thought to ghost through your mind, willing it to be reality.Â
He smiles down at you, taking note in the way you seem to gleam at the idea. A small chuckle leaves his lips, you really are too cute for your own good.Â
His voice is no more than a whisper, forcing you to stay enrapt, âYou will let me, right?â He asks, eyes glancing down to where his pants strain against his hips, âI wish to make love to my future wife.â
Your mouth practically waters at the sight, his hard cock pressed taught against the expensive material. You swear there may even be a wet spot where his cum has leaked through.Â
Your pussy clenches, wanting nothing more for him to find his way inside. For him to claim you for himself. Destroy you so no other man can have you in the same way.
You struggle against yourself for no more than a moment, but the way his hand reaches down, grips at his cock. Brushes his thumb over the surface has you moaning in want.Â
âPlease.âÂ
He smiles, the motion following swift. All at once his hands unbutton his pants, pushing the material down his thighs just enough for his cock to spring free. He groans at the feeling, thick length hitting his stomach. Pretty pre-cum dripping down the side.
Your eyes go wide. If you imagined him to be large before, seeing it now looked impossible. He is thick, long. Far too big to ever hope to fit inside of you.Â
But the desperate groan in his voice, the hungry look in his eyes only has you spreading your legs. Wishing nothing more than for him to destroy you.
One hand wraps around the base as he moves closer, the other forcing the skirt of your dress as high as it will allow. He makes space for himself in between your thighs, slotting himself in. Ready to do what he has been waiting years for.Â
Not yet.
He sees the hesitation in your eyes, the worry. So he leans down, planting a gentle, soothing kiss to your lips. One filled with years of time behind it.Â
He knows he must be careful with you. Knows all of his patience will have been worth it when he is finally able to take your virginity.Â
âWill it hurt?â You as quietly, wrapping your arms around his shoulders to keep him close. You find comfort in him. Find a sense of safety within his eyes.Â
He nods in response, âOnly for a little while, I promise.â He mumbles against your lips, placing a soft kiss against them once more.Â
He slowly rubs the fat head between your folds, coating himself in your arousal. Your hips buck slightly in response, and he canât help but smirk.Â
So sensitive. So ready for him.Â
As much as he wants to be rough, he canât. He canât scare you away just yet.Â
He looks into your eyes once more, âReady?â He asks, giving you one final chance to back out. You only nod your head, pulling him close, hiding your face in his neck.Â
His head catches on your opening with the final drag of his length through your lips. His hands practically shake in excitement, as he guides himself inside. Letting go only once the tip is buried within your walls.Â
He feels your teeth sink into his coat, your body burning with the stretch of him. He only has the first inch inside, yet you think it is more than you could possibly take.Â
A choked cry leaves your lips as he continues to slowly thrust inside. Your arms cling to him as tight as possible. Tears prick in the corner of your eyes as he fills you, forming your entire body just around him. Just around his cock.Â
He pauses only once half of his cock is buried in your needy cunt. You feel his hand come up to caress your cheek, to bring you back down to reality from the pain you feel digging at your core. Trying to bring you some sense of comfort.Â
You pull back from his shoulder to look him in the eyes, expecting to see them soft. Filled with concern. Though there is nothing of the sort there.Â
Behind his bangs is only the look of pure insanity.Â
Though he tries to be compassionate, he really does.
âAre you doing okay?â His voice is strangled, coming out in only desperate cracks. He shakes, wanting nothing more than to fuck himself inside. Fuck himself deeper and deeper, until your cunt is shaped for his cock alone.
But he holds restraint. Just enough.
The way he looks at you, the way he speaks has a wave of pleasure rushing through your skin. Your walls clamp around him, tightening even more.Â
He is falling apart before you, because of you.Â
He has gone mad because of you.
The feeling only makes you want to urge him on. See just how far the prince can fall.
You nod your head, looking at him with all the affections in the world, âDonât stop.âÂ
He groans at your words, mind losing itself as he snaps his hips forward, forcing his cock inside until his hips are firm against your own. Teeth digging into the fragile skin of your neck.
You cry out in pain, your walls squeezing around him in shock. Pain coursing through your entire system as you are filled to the brim. Walls stretched as wide as humanly possible. The head of cock so deep inside you swear you can feel it in your lungs.Â
âShit.â He groans, mouth falling open, âThis pretty thing is wrapped around me so tight, lamb. So fucking tight I canât think.âÂ
He slowly tries to move his hips, though you only shout in response. Your legs wrap around his back, doing their utmost to keep him in place.
âHurts!â You whine, shaking your head quickly.Â
Fucking hell. What is the point of a pussy as sweet as your own if he canât use it properly?
His hand moves between your legs, growl of impatience slipping past his lips as his fingers find your clit. They work with urgency, with need. Rubbing tight circles into it, trying to get you to feel the same pleasure he does.
You whine, overstimulated. Shots fired in all directions leaving you messy and confused.Â
With every circle, a mewl sounds from your throat. Slowly your legs behind him loosen, the pain from before mixing with pleasure to become something wonderful. Something that has you whimpering for him to not stop.Â
âSee?â He grunts, slowly slipping out of your heat until only the tip remains, âWe were made for each other.âÂ
He forces his cock back inside, fucking you open just for him. Only ever for him.Â
Your nails dig into his back, heels digging into the mattress as you moan for him. As your cunt becomes addicted to the feeling of him filling you so perfectly. Addicted to everything he has to offer.
He moves too fast, too hard for you to even hope to keep up with. Hips pistoning into you, forcing you to take everything he has to give and more. Forcing you to be the perfect little doll for him, give him all the pleasure he can want and more. White mixing with red around the base of his cock.
Your back arches off the mattress to try and get closer to him, to try and keep up with him in any hope of the sentiment. Hips trying their best to keep him as close and as deep as possible, knowing they crave one thing and one thing alone.
âPrince Kim!â You moan, yet he growls in response. A sharp slap to your thigh sounds throughout the room as his hips pause, fingers removing themselves from your clit.Â
âThat isnât my name to you anymore.â His voice is low, menacing in your ear. One more poke of the bear and you will be punished. âTaeâHyung.âÂ
He emphasises the words with a sharp thrust of his hips, one that brushes against the bundle inside of you. One that leaves you crying out for him. Clinging on to him.Â
âSay it.â He grunts, animalistic and desperate. Yet youâre too lost in yourself to realise how debauched heâs become. Looking less and less like a man, more like a demon come to lay waste to your soul.Â
That is close enough to the truth, anyway.
âSay it until it becomes the only word you know. Every question I ask, every time I fuck myself into this sweet little cunt. Your only reply should be my name.â He grabs your chin, forcing you to stare at him.Â
Your fucked out little features as you bob your head in compliance.
âI-Iâ You swallow, trying to understand his words as he pounds away at your core, âI understand!âÂ
He smiles, almost proud of the work he has done today.
His hips only move impossibly faster, impossibly harder in a way that has that knot in your gut tightening once more.Â
âWeâll start simple then. What is my name?â He asks, angling his hips to press against your sweet spot with ever slight movement. Breathe panting, his mind falling deeper and deeper into the thralls of your body.Â
âP-Prinââ You stop yourself, a pinch coming down on your skin, âTaehyung!âÂ
He groans, almost coming undone as he hears your name fall from your lips for the very first time. The pretty sound your voice makes with every letter.Â
It could be the only thing he hears for the rest of his life.
âWho are you going to marry?âÂ
You whine, your head thrashing around slightly. He smiles. You must really enjoy the idea of that, huh?
âT-Taehyung!â You manage to stutter out again, feeling your release coming closer and closer as the seconds pass by.Â
âWho is the man you have fallen for?â The answer to the question is easy, especially when he is fucking into you like youâre the only woman that matters. Nothing matters except for him.Â
âTaehyung!â Your brain is too fuzzy to process anything else. Anything other than the way his cock fills you. Anything other than the one word he told you is your gospel.Â
âWho is the boy that kissed you under the cherry tree?â You donât even know anymore.Â
Does any man exist beside Taehyung anyway? You doubt it.
âTaehyung!â He smiles into your neck.Â
âWho was the boy that was going to have you killed? That saved your life?â His words donât process through your ears, yet you know what you are meant to say anyway.
âTaehyung!â He groans, his hips stuttering, losing their pace ever so slightly.Â
âWho do you belong to?âÂ
âTaehyung!â You whine, your thighs shaking. The coil so tight you think you may just die if it doesnât come undone in this very moment.Â
His breath is quiet, only a rough whisper in your ear, âCum.âÂ
Just as your king commands, you fall apart around him. White dots in the corner of your eyes as you clamp down around him, your legs pulling him close. A cry of his name leaving your lungs as if it is the very air you breathe.Â
You feel him paint the inside of your walls white, his hips stutteringâ fucking himself as deep into you as he could possibly manage. If you had any sense left in your little head you would have told him to pull out, yet your brain is so high. Filled with pleasure that only Taehyung can provide.Â
Waves of arousal crash around you as he slows his hips, ensuring that you ride out your orgasm to its fullest before pulling away. You wish he could stay buried inside of you, just like that. Yet you doubt that would be very wise.Â
âWas that good for you, little lamb?â He asks, slowly helping you into a sit. Youâre not sure how to properly answerâ mouth feeling dry. Your head has not yet come crashing back down, though that is probably a good thing.Â
Facing reality is too scary right now. Especially when Taehyung is so warm. So caring as he removes your dress. Slips your nightgown back over your soiled body.Â
âVeryâŠâ You nod, unable to take your eyes off of him as he moves around the bed. Tucking himself back into his pants, removing his shirt and dress-coat. Placing them over the back of a chair. Neatly hanging the dress on a hook, taking care that it is not damaged in any way.
Your arms find themselves reaching out to him, trying to pull him closer to you. He smiles once he takes notice.
âWould you like me to stay the night?â It is clear he was already planning on it, but hearing the words make you smile oh-so bright.Â
âYes, please.â You nod quickly, eyes already feeling tired. You did not know how he had so much energy, but you canât find it in yourself to care. Right now he is meant to be in your bed, arms around you. In fact, you become annoyed that he isnât already.Â
âAlright.â He smiles, slipping next to your form. Wrapping his arms around you, pulling you as close as possible.
You feel so safe. So warm with him. So protected that you canât stop yourself from falling asleep.
âGoodnight my lamb.â
The Kim Empire.Â
His home, his family, his livelihood all wrapped up in those three little words.
Yet, the only thoughts that seem to brandish his mind since the young age of 15 are about you.Â
When you first stumbled in front of him, carrying a tray of tea. Spilling it all over his shoes. That quick curse that left your lips before looking up at him. The wide, doelike vision you had once recognition had set in. One the realisation of error set into your bones.
He will never forget the way his heart began to race in that very moment. The way he felt a cloth of sickness overcome his whole body at the mere sight of you. Looking so serendipitous below him.
At first he thought it was hate, how silly he had been back then. Ah, the way he sent you to be killed was just funny to him now. He is grateful he talked to his mother before your execution date. Spilling his soul to her, detailing how he could not seem to remove you from his brain.
Ah, he was lucky he managed to get the letter to the executioner in time. What a pity that would be if he couldnât. Then he wouldnât have been able to lay next to you now. Wouldnât be able to play with your hair, caress you like he pleases.Â
It is truly too bad that was not his only trial on the road towards you. It was really a pity he had to send Jungkook away. Taehyung quite liked the kid. He was fun to play with and wouldnât shy away from his games.Â
But he just had to try and seduce you. Poor thing. You really were too innocent at the time. More than eager to kiss him for no reason. To give him even a peace of your heart that was meant for Taehyung alone.
He remembers as clear as day, the rage he felt as he watched your soft lips press against another mans. How terribly he wanted to go out and strike Jungkook with a sword. Of course he didnât though, that would have scared you away. He would have hated that.
He thanks god every day he was really your first kiss, even if you didnât know it.Â
Patiences was the hardest battle of all, and he will admit, he has faltered a few times over the years. Kisses stolen while you sleep, a few of your belongings robbed to keep him satiated. Mayhaps a few trips to your room in the night.Â
But who could blame him? He was a man in love. There was nothing that could stop him when he was so hungry for you.Â
Ah, and then of course his father. He wanted to separate your love as well. A maid could never possibly be suited to be queen, blah blah. He doesnât care. And at least that fight allowed him to hug you for the first time.Â
God. You felt so perfect in his arms, then and now. You have always been meant for this. Meant for him.
If his father plans to keep standing in the way, he will simply have to remove him from the equation. His bonds to the man are as thick as water. He cares more for you than he possibly could anyone else.
Youâve belonged to him since you were born, anyway. If a maid becomes pregnant while working for the castle, her child becomes property of the state. Of the crown. Of him.Â
It only makes sense that you are meant to be with him until death. It is the path lined for you. Your fate since birth.Â
He knows it as his delicate fingers trace over the small patches of blood dirtying the sheets. Evidence of the hours before, of your virginity robbed. Of your promises to him.
You are bound to him by blood after all.
© all rights reserved to ctrlhope 2019-2024 ; do not copy, plagiarise, or translate.
on a real note this fic was GOODT!!đŁïžand yall know I rarely post fic recs but Iâve been in such a Taehyung mood lately
The Story of Us
Pairing: Mahwa Character!Min Yoongi x Reader
Summary: You wake up in the body of the second female lead in a manhwa, determined to rewrite your fate. No longer willing to be trapped in unrequited love for the elusive main lead, Min Yoongi, you set out to change the ending of the story. But leaving him behind isnât as simple as you thought. As the lines between fiction and reality blur, the narrative begins to shift in unexpected waysâYoongi, who was once only devoted to the main female lead, starts to see you in a new light. Can you escape the cycle of heartbreak, or will you find yourself entangled in a love story you never asked for?
or in which Yoongi found out you aren't from that world and refuses to let you leave.
Warnings: Yandere behavior, Obsessiveness, Possessiveness, Manipulative behavior, Mention of death, If youâre not 18+ please, PLEASE, do not interact. Be mindful of the warnings. Let me know if I miss anything.
A/N: Happy 6k to me!!! It's finally here. Those who already read the unedited fic know the scenes I added here... I went crazy again and wrote additional 3kish words. I hope you enjoy!
âDoes self-love mean nothing for you?â
You commented lightly at the second female lead as you flipped the page. In your hand was the manhwa your friends were gushing about. They went on and on about how dreamy the main lead was for weeks and how annoying the second female lead was until you finally gave in and went to a bookstore one late night. The cover was unassuming, a mere illustration of a man with dark hair and a milky white skin. Despite the chatters of the few customers, it was like it all went silent when you held the manhwa in your hand. You had no rationale as to why you were staring so hard at the main lead, nor why you felt a jolt of electricity when you traced your finger on his face.
The sudden and inexplainable zap of electricity was enough for you to put the manhwa back to its shelf where it belonged. You had enough for today, you thought. It must be your late nights that finally got to you. You turned and started to walk away when you heard someone called your name.
âAre you not going to buy that?â
You blinked owlishly, turning to look your surroundings before realizing that the voice had come from behind you where an old woman with a pleasant smile on her face stood. You didnât hear her walk, sure that it was only you in that section of the bookstore.
âExcuse me?â you asked in confusion with her sudden question.
She offered you a smile before reaching for the manhwa you were touching moments ago. âThis. Are you not going to buy this?â
You glanced at the book in her hands, the cover innocuous enoughâa pale-faced man with dark eyes, his expression unreadable, a haunting sort of beauty that seemed to shimmer under the dim light of the store. The same man whose face had burned into your mind the moment youâd traced your finger over it.
"Huh?" you muttered, not entirely sure what to say. "Oh, no... Iâ" You fumbled with your words, caught between politeness and that unsettling pull you couldnât deny. âIâm just looking.â
She tilted her head slightly, her smile never wavering, but there was something deeper there nowâan unreadable warmth and perhaps... a warning? "Such a shame. This is the last piece," she continued, her fingers running over the cover with a tenderness that made your heart race. "Are you sure you donât want to enter his universe?"
You stared at her, perplexed. The bookstore was quiet again, save for the soft hum of the air conditioning and the distant murmur of other customers. But it felt like there was something else in the air nowâsomething heavier. More alive.
As if on cue, your phone buzzed in your pocket, breaking the strange tension that had settled between you and the clerk. You fumbled it out, your heart still racing. It was a text from one of your friends: "Did you finally get the manhwa? He's sooooo hot, right?!?"
You looked from your phone to the manhwa and there it was again. It was like something was calling you to touch the book. On the other hand, your flight or fight instinct had never been this high, urging you to walk away as soon as possible. The old womanâs gaze never left you, her expression still serene, as if she knew exactly what you were thinking. The tension between you felt palpable, like a tether was drawing you back to the book, back to the man on the cover.
"You know what, dear," she continued, her voice now almost conspiratorial, "since we're almost closing, itâs on the house. Let me wrap it up for you."
When you asked her why, it was a line you should have taken in face value.
She said that reading this will change your life.
All that was how you found yourself on your bed with the manhwa and feeling bad for the second female lead. Okay fine, she was not exactly kind. She was a bit bitchy and the typical rich kid who fell for her childhood friend who of course, fell for another woman below their stature. She devised devious ways to get the main female lead out of their lives which only managed to push Min Yoongi, the male lead character, away from her. She wanted him so badly, and she had nothing else to cling to. In the end, he left her alone when all she had was him.
She was left alone, Yoongi gone from her life, and all she had left were her schemes and bitterness. You couldnât help but wonder what she could have been if she had just let go. If she had let him go, instead of holding on so tightly that she suffocated herself.
She wasnât a villain, you told yourself, though you knew she was far from a saint.
It wasnât that you were defending what she did. It was just that you felt for her, strangely. You had no family of your own too, and maybe that was why you held on to your friends. You thought that if you were as pretty and as wealthy as her, then you wouldnât spend all your time and energy pining after Yoongi. You thought about herâso pretty, so polishedâand you wondered, If I were her, would I have acted the same way? If you had that beauty, that wealth, that presence, would you still feel this same deep ache for someone who couldnât love you back? Sure, he was all that. He was handsome, smart, and so manly. For a while, it was just the two of them in their little world until he met the female lead. But then again, if you were her, you would let them be and look for someone who would love you as you were. Surely, there was someone out there for her. You wondered if it would be easy to just walk away, you thought. But then, you didnât know what it was like to have everything and still lose the one thing that mattered most. To feel like there was no one left who could make you feel whole.
The story was so intriguing with the right amount of suspense that kept you up all night. Despite you being a non-mahwa reader, you could not bring yourself to stop reading until you reached the ending.
The words of the final chapters echoed in your mind as you read through them. Yoongiâs happiness came at her expense, and as you turned the page, you saw the final blow: She died. She died because Yoongi decided to save the main female lead from drowning instead of his childhood friend. Just like that. No grand redemption, no change of heart. She was gone. âOf course, she dies,â you murmured in annoyance as you flipped the page. âWas that really necessary for this Yoongi to get his happy ending?â
You put the manhwa down on your chest and looked up at your bedroom ceiling. You felt tears forming in your eyes and before you knew it, they were streaming down your cheeks and onto the manhwa. âPoor you. You deserved better,â you whispered as sleep took you away.
You didnât remember falling asleep, but the next time you opened your eyes, it felt like you were in a dream. More precisely, you woke up to a familiar room. You just couldnât place it yet where you saw this room before. You sat up from the most comfortable bed you had ever been on, your eyes roaming over the whole room. Where were you?
You looked down and noticed that you were wearing a silk sleepwearâŠYou didnât own this. In fact, you never liked it because you couldnât afford it. Did someone dress you in this? Were you kidnapped?
Panic surged through you like a wave, a cold knot tightening in your stomach. The thought alone pushed you to stand up quickly, your head turning rapidly to every corner of the room when a mirror across the room caught your eye. You walked over, unsure of what you were even looking for, but the reflection that met you made your heart stop.
Holy shit.
You froze in front of the mirror, your breath caught somewhere between disbelief and panic. The face staring back at you was undeniably familiar but was definitely not yours. It was herâthe woman from the manhwa.
Your hand lifted slowly, as if drawn by an invisible force, and touched your cheek, tracing the delicate curve of your jaw. The reflection mimicked your every move, except there was no mistake: it wasnât you. This version of you was flawlessâher skin porcelain smooth, her lips full and painted in a soft, understated pink. You blinked hard, willing the image to change, but it remained the same, impossibly perfect.
And then it hit you, harder than any realization should have: You were in her world. You were in her body. You were the second female lead.
What the fuck was this dream?!
You pinched yourself, willing yourself to wake up from this peculiar dream where you were not you, and instead, you were someone of a fictional character. All that it did was reddened her fair skin. You truly tried not to panic, but no one and nothing could have ever prepared you from waking up in someone elseâs body! More so of a fictional one. Similarly, you knew this could not be possible. You must have been dreaming.
You were just dreamingâŠright?
The knock on the door snapped you out of your stupor, your mind reeling as the panic tightened its grip.
âMiss? Sir Yoongi is here to see you,â the voice outside the door called, timid, hesitant.
You blinked, the words barely registering at first. Yoongi? No. No, no, no. Your heart dropped to your stomach, and the world around you seemed to tilt at an impossible angle. You opened your mouth to respond, but all that came out was a shaky, disbelieving breath.
"Y-yoongi?" Your voice sounded strange, foreign in this body, yet with an edge of authority, the voice of someone accustomed to being looked at, obeyed.
âN-no. Why?â
âT-to visit you, Miss. He went straight here from the airport after his three-month work in New York,â she explained with a terrified tone in her voice as though one wrong word would upset you. It did upset you upon horrifying realization that you were in the first chapter of the manhwa. He was coming to see the second female lead, the one who would only ever be a part of his life for the briefest, most painful moments. The one who would disappear when the main female lead entered the picture, leaving behind nothing but heartache and regret.
This was the momentâthe beginning of her unraveling. The beginning of your unraveling.
You stumbled back from the mirror, almost tripping over the hem of the silk nightgown that clung to your skin. It felt wrong. This wasnât your body. This wasnât you. You couldnât be her. You couldn't.
But there you wereâshe wasâstanding in front of a mirror, and it was your face that stared back, the same face that would soon be abandoned in favor of the main lead. The face that would die tragically, just as Yoongi chose someone else.
A cold sweat broke out on your skin as you pressed your hand to your chest, feeling your heart race, the pulse throbbing in your throat. The maid outside the door was waiting. She was waiting. Yoongi was waiting.
âMiss? Are you coming?â The maid asked again, sounding more nervous now. âSir Yoongi is waiting.â
You felt your legs walked to where the door was as though they had a mind of their own, as though they were simply following the plot where you had to face her childhood bestfriend, as though you had no choice in this. The door creaked as it slowly opened, and the maid stepped back with a small, nervous bow. âMiss,â she murmured softly, her eyes flicking between you and the hallway.
There he was. Yoongi. Standing in the hallway, waiting for you.
His broad back was turned to you, his focus was on the huge window overlooking the garden below. His hands were in his pockets. You couldnât help but notice the bags of designer clothes and jewelries beside him. It was always like this. Yoongi would spoil her with everything, his love a quiet promise wrapped in material things. His affection was given in expensive packages, just because he missed her. It was a thing the main lead, Yoongi, and her had for the longest times. He spoiled her rotten, and in turn, she loved him unconditionally until he realized that it wasnât her love that he wanted. It was someone elseâs.
You felt your chest tighten as you stepped forward, closer to him. And then, slowly, he turned around, his gaze landing on you, his eyes sharp and calculating, as though he was seeing you for the first time. He was just as handsome as you'd imagined, his sharp features bathed in the soft light of the chandelier overhead. His expression, however, was unreadableâhis usual aloofness on full display. He had on a simple black jacket, the sleeves rolled up slightly, revealing his forearms.
He was standing there, just as he had been in the manhwaâdistant, untouchable, and perfect. The kind of person who seemed to have everything. Everything except the one thing that would make him whole. His lips curved into a faint smirk, the usual aloofness settling over him like a second skin. Yoongi. So damn confident. So certain of himself. Yet there was something flickering beneath that exterior, something you couldn't place.
He took a step toward you, his gaze unwavering, and for a moment, everything felt too heavy, too real. The space between you both seemed like an eternity, but somehow you couldnât move. You couldnât breathe.
He raised his brows when you remained motionless â so dissimilar to how the second female lead threw herself in his arms in the first chapter. âWhat?â he said, his voice a quiet challenge. âDidnât you miss me?â
His words hit you like a cold wave. Didnât you miss me?
The phrase was so familiar, but it made you flinch. It was the same thing he had said to her. The second female lead. Her. The woman you had now become. You opened your mouth to respond, but nothing came out. Your breath caught in your throat, the weight of his gaze leaving you paralyzed. How were you supposed to feel? What was the right answer?
Yoongiâs smirk deepened as he took another step closer, his presence commanding the space between you both. He wasnât giving up.
âAigoo,â he muttered, as though your silence had amused him. âIs my princess mad at me?â He reached out, cupping your cheeks in his hands and squishing them gently, his thumb brushing across your skin in a familiar, playful gesture. âI promise I wonât be away for that long again, okay?â
The words hit you like a punch to the gut. My princess. Mad at me? It was just like the manhwa. Just like how the second female lead had fallen for himâhow sheâd craved his affection, how she had convinced herself that he was the only one who could make her whole.
How could she not fall for him? How could she not love him when he was thisâthis?
See, who wouldnât fall for that? You understood the second female lead for falling in love with him, or why she did all those terrible things when he suddenly withdrew all his affections from her. But maybeâŠyou could change the ending. Maybe you could find a happy ending of your own away from him. You could choose differently. You could walk away. You could find your own path, away from him, away from this tragic loop. Maybeâjust maybeâthere was a way for you to have a happy ending. Not the one written in the manhwa, but one you could choose. One where you didnât lose yourself in the love of a man who could never return it.
What if you and him could all have your separate happy endings?
But also, what if this was just a dream where youâd wake up later and be in your own bed?
It was almost a week later when you realized that this wasnât a dream. Despite repeatedly pinching yourself, you still couldnât wake up from this nightmare. You hadnât gone out of your room since Yoongi visited, and all messages and calls from him were promptly ignored.
You couldnât even rule out that you were actively going insane because there was no way that this was now your reality. Something inside you was telling you to do something. It was urging you to fight, to survive, not matter how difficult it would be. It was proven when he visited you and you had no control over what happened. However, you also noted that you could do things somehow differently like not hugging him when he visited, or not being affectionate to him.
There were canon events, yes. There were things that should happen as were already dictated by the manhwa. But you also had a will in this story. And if there was a chance that this was your new reality, then you would do absolutely everything to make sure that you end up living.
You had to be smart. You had an edge, you surmised. You read the entire manhwa and you knew what was going to happen. You knew what to anticipate. And the next scene? The next scene was where Yoongi met the female lead and it would be in a charity ball you and him were attending.
You were dressed to the nines, your makeup was impeccable. Around your neck was one of the second female leadâs extravagant necklaces. The dress that she chose was immaculate, a light-colored floor-length gown that would later on be ruined by the female leadâs accident in the ball. You looked down from the unfamiliar eyes staring back at you in the mirror as your maid informed you that the car was waiting downstairs. You got this.
You werenât used to her life of extravagance and you could feel a shot of anxiety pumping in your veins as the car neared the event. You could see reporters and cameramen lining up to capture the entrance of the wealthiest of the wealthiest. Nothing in your life could have prepared you for this. You were not a confident personâŠbut she was. You only needed to get through this night and then slowly let the events happened. You would let the two of them fall in love with each other like it needed to be.
âWeâre here, miss,â your driver announced, meeting your eyes from the rearview mirror. You took a deep breath and counted to three.
1âŠ2âŠ3-
The door opened and just when you opened your eyes, there he was.
Camera flashes illuminated the scene from his back, yet his focus was on you. His hand was outstretched, waiting for you to reach for it. But damn it, Min Yoongi was impeccable. Just like you, he was dressed to the nines with his tailored dark suit and his brushed up dark hair. He was the epitome of what a main lead should look like. Still, you couldnât fault both the main and second female lead for falling in love with that face. If only you werenât trying to stay alive, then you would most probably fall for that face, too.
Too bad you were trying to stay alive.
The weight of the moment settled heavily on your chest as you stared at his outstretched hand. The flashes of the cameras were relentless, their bursts creating a kaleidoscope of light and shadow that painted Yoongi's face with an almost ethereal glow. His dark eyes bored into yours, and for a split second, the world seemed to pause.
You hesitated, your hand hovering just out of reach. This was one of those moments, wasn't it? One of the canon events you couldnât avoid. Taking his hand was expected, a necessary step to ensure the night unfolded as the manhwa demanded. Yet, the knowledge didnât make it any easier.
âI donât think you can hide from me now, princess,â Yoongiâs voice was soft but firm. In fact, there was no annoyance in his tone, only a quiet patience as though you didnât spend the past days dodging him in every turn.
You swallowed hard, forcing yourself to push past the whirlwind of nerves. You had to remember who you were nowâor at least who you were pretending to be. She wouldnât falter, wouldnât hesitate. She was poised, confident, the kind of woman who could command a room with a single glance. She was a woman who knew the power she had over society.
Plastering on a polite smile, you placed your hand in his. His fingers were warm, steady, and for a moment, the contact felt grounding. You couldnât help but notice how his hand completely engulfed yours, how he made your hands seemed dainty in comparison to his. He helped you out of the car with a practiced grace, his touch lingering for a fraction longer than necessary. You didnât want to dwell on the fact that you felt the same electricity that you did when you first touched the manhwa.
âShall we?â he asked, his voice low enough that only you could hear it.
You knew you had no choice as he guided you up the grand entrance. This was a canon event. The canon event leading up to their meeting. You had to play your part if you wanted to not experience dying in her body.
The flashes of cameras almost blinded you had it not been for Yoongiâs broad back that shielded you from them. The two of you stopped in the middle to smile for the camera, a PR thing Yoongi had to do for his company. His hand rested on the small of your back, gently pushing you closer to him. You knew what would happen like the back of your hand, and just as written, one of the reporters asked him to define his relationship status with you.
Sheâs the most important woman in my life.
âSheâs the most important woman in my life,â Yoongi declared with unwavering sincerity, his deep voice resonating through the flashes and murmurs of the crowd. As he looked down at you, his lips curved into that signature, disarming smileâthe kind that could melt even the coldest of hearts.
The ball was just as grand as you imagined. It was apparent that the rich spared no expense in this and you couldnât imagine that you would experience this in your life. Yoongiâs gaze lingered on you, an unreadable expression flickering in his eyes as he watched you take it all in. There was something almost amused about the way he observed you, though he said nothing. It was almost comical to him how you were impressed with this when the friend he knew practically grew up in this extravagance. You were in awe at the intricate details, the food and drink being served, and the expensive jewelries that would be auctioned tonight.
âWhat do you want me to bid for?â Yoongi asked, his voice low and smooth as he tipped his wineglass to his lips, his dark eyes not straying from you.
You let out a short chuckle, already knowing what to say. âI want that old ring the Queen once owned,â you answered monotonously. It was the most expensive item in the auction, and exactly the kind of thing the second female lead would desire. You, on the other hand, felt that it was ridiculous to desire something that was given by someone who dearly loved the Queen. Yoongi merely lifted his dark brow before nodding his head.
As always, her will was always his commandâ until it wasnât.
The bidding war for the final piece, the ring, didnât take that long as Yoongi continuously bidded ridiculously high amounts that the businessmen could not keep up with the younger man. Yoongi didnât even flinch as the bids shot up. He stood there, effortlessly cool, his back straight and shoulders squared, his eyes locked on the auctioneer like a predator stalking its prey. The others tried to keep pace, their offers becoming desperate, their faces flushed with a mix of anger and humiliation as Yoongi continued to raise the stakes, his voice cold and assured as he increased his offer without hesitation.
In the end, Yoongi won. And it showed with the way he turned back to you, that same smirk still dancing at corner of his lips.
This was it.
This was the moment.
Yoongi was walking to you, his expression still that of a triumphant victor as he made his way to you. You couldnât help but keep your eyes to him. The way his dark eyes were trained on you was captivating and you were captivated. It was as though you were the only one in this room to him, like all other people could disappear and he wouldnât even blink. In fact, you were too captivated that you almost forgot what the next scene was.
But just as was written by the author, a waitress tripped, your light-colored dress now splashed with red wine, a stark contrast. The sound of glass breaking, the accident itself, was enough to silence the whole ballroom. Your mouth hanged agape as you looked down at your dress, and then slowly, you lift your eyes to the waitress.
Your eyes met the female leadâs. Hers was comically wide as she continuously apologized to you, her expression that of panic as her manager and more people flocked to where you were.
âWhat happened?â Yoongiâs voice was sharp, his usual calm replaced by a low, controlled edge. His hands clasped your arms with a firm but steady grip, his gaze darting between your face and the ruined fabric of your gown. The pristine, light-colored dress was now stained with crimson, the deep red wine soaking into the fabric and spreading like an ominous bloom.
Your eyes flicked back to the waitressâherâthe female lead. Just as the manhwa dictated, there she was, the unassuming heroine, standing in front of you with wide, tear-filled eyes. Her cheeks flushed crimson as she stammered apology after apology, her hands trembling as she bent down to pick up the shards of broken glass at her feet. You saw her flinched.
âIâIâm so sorry! I didnât mean to! Please forgive me, Miss!â she pleaded, her voice shaky and sincere. The panic on her face was painfully familiar. Youâd read this scene before. You knew every word, every gesture.
And yet, being in it now, living itâfelt different.
Your dress was ruined, yes, but more importantly, this was the moment. The one where Yoongi, the ever-distant, untouchable main lead, would first notice her. Where his protective instincts would be stirred, his curiosity piqued by her clumsy, honest nature. This was where it all beganâtheir love story.
Except right now, he wasnât looking at her. He was still looking at you
âAre you okay?â he asked, his voice quieter now, his brows furrowed as his thumb lightly grazed your arm, checking for any sign of injury. There was no recognition in his gaze for the woman kneeling at your feet, no acknowledgment of her presence.
You blinked, caught off guard. This wasnât how it was supposed to go. By now, he should have been helping her, offering her a reassuring smile, gently lifting her to her feet. That was what the script demanded
But here he was, his focus entirely on you.
âIâŠâ Your voice faltered as your mind raced to adjust. You needed to steer this back on track. The story needed to progress, or everything could spiral out of control. âIâm fine. Itâs just the dress,â you said, forcing your tone to be light, dismissive, as though the ruined gown didnât matter.
Yoongiâs lips pressed into a thin line, his gaze hardening. âItâs not fine,â he said, his voice firm. He turned, his sharp eyes landing on the waitress. The poor girl visibly flinched under his scrutiny, her hands freezing mid-motion as she tried to gather the broken pieces.
âIt was an accident,â you said quickly, stepping forward and placing a hand on his arm to stop him. âYoongi, itâs fine.â Your words were deliberate, almost desperate. You needed him to look at her, to notice her, to play his part in the story.
He hesitated, his jaw tightening, but at last, his gaze shifted to the waitress. There it wasâthat flicker of recognition. The moment his eyes softened, his expression melting into something less severe.
âAre you hurt?â he asked her, his tone still carrying a note of authority, but the sharp edges were gone. This was itâthe moment youâd been waiting for.
The girl shook her head quickly, her cheeks turning an even darker shade of red. âN-no, sir! Iâm fine. Iâm so sorry, I didnât mean toââ
âEnough,â Yoongi interrupted gently but firmly. He crouched down, his movements slow, deliberate, as he began picking up the shards of glass alongside her. The room seemed to collectively hold its breath, all eyes on the enigmatic businessman lowering himself to help a clumsy waitress. âBe careful. Youâre going to hurt yourself,â he said with a much softer voice. His gaze lingered on her face, and it was apparent that you were now forgotten.
And there it wasâtheir first connection. The moment the story truly began.
You exhaled slowly, stepping back as the crowd around you began to disperse, the murmurs of the guests returning to their usual buzz. This was how it had to be. You just had to step back now and let their love story grow.
You reached the balcony and you thanked heavens that you were alone. You breathed a sigh of relief, both for the gratitude that you were alone and for surviving that scene. You were looking up at the stars when you felt a suit jacket landed on your shoulders, safely engulfing you with warmth and against the cold night.
You turned, not knowing who to expect but he was definitely not it. You didnât even know who he was.
The handsome man met your eyes before flashing you a charming smile of his own that was enough to disarm you. âWhat a shameâŠâ
You blinked, confused by his sudden appearance, your heart still racing from the scene inside. "What is?" you asked, voice quieter than you'd intended, as your eyes darted back toward the ballroom doors.
"That your dress was ruined," he said smoothly, his tone playful, though his eyes seemed to hold something moreâcuriosity, maybe, or perhaps something deeper. "You were the most beautiful girl there. You managed to catch everyoneâs attention when you entered the roomâ including mine."
Sputtering at his confidence, you felt your cheeks heated up from his statement. âWere?â
The side of his eyes crinkled as he looked at you. He couldnât believe that the elusive and untouchable you were giving him the time of the day. You were always in Yoongiâs orbit, and everyone knew how powerful his family was. It was always the two of you in your own little world, and Yoongi was seldom far from you. It was the reason why suitors couldnât reach you. No one needed the Min Yoongi for an enemy.
It was safe to say that the relationship between the two of you were always a question mark to the onlookers. In the world of the rich, the two of you should have been long engaged if that was the case. And a chance that Yoongi was far from you was not to be wasted. And so, he took the chance.
âYou still are,â he breathed honestly. He couldnât take his eyes off of you. You were so magnificent and he understood why Yoongi was similar to a guard dog when it came to you. He extended his hand to you. âIâm Kim Taehyung.â
You only had to wait, but the waiting got boring. When youâd read the manhwa, the pacing had felt seamless, the love story unfolding with a rhythm that kept you turning the pages. Here, however, their love story took time.
It turned out that not only were you bored, but you were also extremely wealthy in this life. You rationalized that it would be okay to enjoy her life just a little.
Leaning on the balcony railing, you released your fifteenth sigh of the day, staring blankly at the sprawling estate below. Behind you, the ever-dutiful maid hovered, hands clasped nervously in front of her. Her expression flickered between concern and trepidation, as though bracing for one of the infamous tantrums her mistress was known for. Lately, though, youâd given her nothing of the sortâno sharp words, no impatient outbursts. That, in itself, seemed to unsettle her.
However, another sigh from you finally prompted her to ask you what was wrong.
Her eyes widened, startled by the question. âI⊠I suppose Iâd pay off my familyâs debts,â she admitted, voice small. âItâs been weighing on us for years.â
âHow much?â you asked, your tone casual, as though inquiring about the weather.
âThree million,â she murmured, her cheeks coloring as though the very amount embarrassed her. âBut I couldnât possiblyââ
âConsider it done,â you interrupted breezily, waving off her protests. âNext?â
âMaybeâŠIâd go to Paris?â
You nodded, your eyes gleamed as the spark of inspiration ignited within you. A brilliant, slightly impulsive idea. âThatâs perfect. Grab your passport.â
It turned out that Paris was also someoneâs favorite place.
You were sitting in a café one late afternoon, willing the time to pass by quickly so you could return to your life as evidenced by your poor attempt at reading a book when the chair in front of you was suddenly occupied. With your peace suddenly gone, you looked up and met his eyes. He was smiling at you, his dark hair brushed away from his face, so dissimilar to how formal he looked when you met him.
âWe must stop meeting like this.â
He chuckled at your expression before he leaned in on the table. âIn Paris, of all places. I have to say, this is starting to look like fate.â
Who was he exactly?
You tried to rack your brain of his scenes in the manhwa, and you had been ever since you met him in that ball. He wasnât supposed to be in the sceneâŠor was it possible that that happened behind the scene when the focus wasnât on you, but on Yoongi and the female lead?
âDo you believe in fate, Mr. Kim?â you titled you head in curiosity, looking at him intently for any sort of familiarity that may come your way.
âI do and I donât. I think that fate is an abstract concept that no man can ever define. There are some things that we are just too powerless to stop; and there are some things that we are too powerful to accept,â he stated with a smile on his face. âYouâre here because of fate, Y/N. Donât you think so?â
âWhat?â
Taehyung chuckled and patiently waited as the waiter placed his cup of hot chocolate on the table. âI think that youâre fated to be here at this exact moment.â
âWhat are you saying, Taehyung?â
âIâm saying, have dinner with me tonight.â
It was your second week in Paris when curiosity finally got the better of you. On the other hand, you could say that the past few days were one of the most interesting days of your life. You never knew that that little dinner with Taehyung could result to you gaining a true friend here. He was interesting, quirky, wise, and full of life. You also learned that he went to the same school as the original second female lead and Yoongi attended, and that he could never befriended you before because Yoongi was always with you. He offhandedly noted that it was so rare for him not to be with you when before, wherever you went, he would follow. Speaking of the character that you assumed, her phoneâyour phone nowâsat untouched on the marble nightstand of your hotel suite. Youâd avoided it so far, reasoning that it felt like rifling through a strangerâs diary. But tonight, as the soft glow of the Eiffel Tower illuminated the room, you gave in.
Plugging it in, the device vibrated to life, and a flood of notifications lit up the screen. Your jaw dropped slightly as you skimmed through the endless stream of missed calls and messages. Most of them were from Yoongi.
âOf course,â you muttered under your breath, scrolling through the list. There were texts, voicemails, and even some emails from him, all timestamped over the last two weeks.
His messages started casual enough, asking you where you were and if you were still avoiding him. He even stopped by the mansion only to find out that you werenât there, let alone in the country. Not one in your mansion could tell him where you were despite his endless threats. As days passed by, however, his tone shifted to frustration.
Iâm not kidding anymore. If I donât hear from you, Iâm coming to find you.
I am hiring a team to find you, princess.
His final message was dated today.
I do hope you remember that it is my birthday today. We always celebrate it together. Weâre not gonna stop now just because youâre hiding from me.
You stared at the phone for a moment longer, the screen dark now but somehow still demanding your attention. Should you respond? What would you even say?
The phone vibrated in your hand, the screen lighting up with his name. Your stomach did a little flip, but you shook your head firmly. No. You werenât going to answer. It was better this wayâfor him, for you, for the storyline. Yoongi belonged with the female lead, and the longer you stayed out of their orbit, the better. If you wanted to live, you had to do the opposite of what the second female lead did.
Instead, you grabbed your jacket, ready to explore the city some more with Taehyung. Paris was too beautiful to waste time fretting over a fictional manâs messages. Let Yoongi wait.
But just as you opened your hotel room, there he was with his signature stoic face, his dark brow raised. He pointedly looked at your phone, his name on the screen. He had his phone on his ear, while you had yours in your hand. You were literally caught red-handed ignoring his calls.
He ended the call with a deliberate tap and tucked his phone into his pocket, his gaze never leaving yours.
âGoing somewhere?â
âWhat are you doing here?â you asked, shocked at his sudden appearance. He was supposed to be with her. The story said that he was supposed to be with her, celebrating with her, saving her from any other accidents or situations she found herself in. You did your part by staying the hell away from themâŠ.so why was he here?
Yoongi tilted his head slightly, his gaze narrowing. âShouldnât I be asking you that?â His tone was calm, but the edge was unmistakable. He stepped inside as though he owned the place. He didnât ask for permission, didnât wait for an invitation. He was just⊠there, filling the room with his presence like he always did. âAnd Paris, of all places? Youâre more predictable than you think, princess.â
âI-I mean, I didnât think youâd notice,â you stammered, your voice barely above a whisper, already regretting how ridiculous it sounded.
âWhat? How could I not? You literally disappeared on the face of the earth. You think I wouldnât notice when you disappeared? When youâre not there?â
The intensity in his gaze left you momentarily stunned, your thoughts scrambling for coherence. âY-youâre not supposed to be hereâŠâ you muttered, more to yourself than to him. Your disbelief bled into your words, your mind struggling to reconcile his presence with what you knewâor thought you knew. âThe story says youâre supposed to be with her. This isnâtâthis isnât how it goes.â
âWhat story?â
You blinked owlishly, realizing what youâd said. âHuh? Nothing!â you exclaimed a little too quickly, waving your hands as if to physically push the moment away. âAnyway! Happy birthday!â you added, your voice unnaturally bright, hoping to distract him.
His squint deepened, a mix of curiosity and frustration flickering in his eyes. He clearly didnât buy your deflection, but he let it slideâfor now. Without a word, he crossed the room to the small bar cart in the corner, casually pouring himself a glass of whisky.
The tension in the air was thick as he swirled the amber liquid in the glass, his movements deliberate. He raised the glass to his lips, his gaze never leaving yours. You could practically see the wheels turning in that intelligent brain of his as he sized you up. After taking a slow sip, he finally spoke, his voice low, âGlad you remember my birthday, princess.â
Okay, fine. You were at loss. How were you supposed to know what you should say? This was not in the manhwa! Yoongi was basically going off-script!
You didnât answer. You couldnât. Instead, you turned your gaze to the door, silently willing him to leave. But Yoongi didnât move. If anything, he seemed more determined, his presence as unyielding as ever.
âFine,â he said after a long moment, his voice quieter now, almost resigned. âIf you wonât come back, then Iâll stay. Paris is nice this time of year, isnât it?â
He stuck by you like a shadow and he all but bought the entire hotel floor. He was adamant on spending every moment with you. The most baffling part? He still kept in touch with her. He called, he texted, he checked in on the female leadâbut here he was, right beside you, refusing to leave. It made no sense. To add confusion to the mix, Yoongi kept on shooting dark glares at your phone whenever it chimed from Taehyungâs messages and he felt himself getting irritated. He wondered who was brave enough to message you when no one used to before except him.
You had been away for him for just a short time and yet, he felt like you were so far away already, like something shifted, like your entirety changed. It was like you were not the best friend he used to have.
You looked down at your phone as soon as it chimed again and you couldnât help but chuckled at the silly selfie he took with a duck. You were too engrossed in your phone that you missed the way Yoongi gripped his utensils. You and him hadnât spent time together since you were so busy evading him and now that he finally caught up with you, your attention was somewhere else.
Why were your attention not on him?
Who was stealing your attention away from him?!
Was this how you punished him because of his current fling?
The sound of Yoongiâs sharp exhale pierced the air, and you glanced up just in time to see his fingers grip the edge of his glass with more force than was necessary. His jaw was tight, his eyes narrowedânot at the phone in your hand, but at you. He didnât say anything, but the silence between you both was thick with something unspoken, a tension you had been drowning in since he followed you here.
It wasnât that you wanted to ignore him, but the truth was... you didnât know how to deal with this version of Yoongi. The one who wasnât following the script. The one who was here in Paris, beside you, watching you laugh at Taehyung's ridiculous duck selfie like it was the most natural thing in the world.
âWhatâs so funny?â Yoongiâs voice was quiet, but it was sharp. He didnât bother to look at your phone. Instead, his gaze stayed locked on your face, his eyes a shade darker, deeper than you remembered them being.
You blinked, momentarily stunned by the sudden shift in his mood. âOh, nothing, just a ridiculous selfie from my friend,â you said, still chuckling to yourself. âHeâs with a duck.â
âHe?â His voice held a dry amusement, but there was an edge to it that made you uncomfortable.
You could feel the subtle tension thickening in the air, like the weight of a storm about to break. Yoongi's question hung between you like a spark in dry tinder. You shrugged, pretending to be casual, though the hairs on the back of your neck stood on end. "Yes, he. My friend Taehyung," you said, not looking up from your phone.
But you could feel Yoongiâs eyes boring into you, every syllable of his next words like a tightening coil. âTaehyung,â he repeated, his voice cold and deliberate, as though testing the name on his tongue. His grip on his glass had tightened to the point where his knuckles were white, but it didnât stop the slow, calculated sip he took, his gaze never leaving you.
The way he said his name made it seemed like your friendship with him was a mistake, a simple blunder on your end that shouldnât have happened. It did feel like you stepped on a live mine, and you wondered why you were feeling like this when from what you knew about his character in the manhwa, Yoongi was a pure person. However, right now he felt like a dangerous one.
What were you supposed to do?
âYouâre thirty now,â you said instead, steering the conversation away from an unfamiliar territory as you placed the phone facedown. The two of you were having brunch in a famous restaurant and you were thoroughly enjoying the croissant moments before the conversation turned sour.
He regarded you for a moment, fully aware of how you this was your sad attempt at changing the subject until he decided to put you out of misery. He nodded, waiting for you to make your point.
âYouâre not getting any younger-â
He raised an eyebrow, a smirk playing at the corners of his lips. âWhatâs the point of this conversation, princess? Youâre starting to sound like my grandma." He paused, as if savoring the thought. "By the way, she keeps asking for you. Says, and I quote, âher favorite grandchild never comes to visit anymore.â Not even a phone call. Meanwhile, Iâm still here, the actual grandchild, and I get nothing."
His glare was sharp, but there was no real venom behind itâjust the familiar teasing edge that made you both roll your eyes and laugh, despite yourself.
âW-well! Iâm just concerned that you wonât have a wife and any children of your own and that youâd grow old alone! Iâm just a friend expressing concern over her best and oldest friendâŠâ you rationalized. Fine, you were having fun teasing him while nudging him in the right direction. Yoongi was fun to mess with, you thought, if he was being himself and not the confusing and quite off-putting mood he was in a while ago.
You thought that he would react the way you anticipated him to, that he would get defensive and after which, hopefully, that heâd go back to their love story.
He did none of those things.
Instead, Yoongi leaned in, his manly scent permeating. He tucked a stray strand of your hair behind your ear, all while looking at you. âWhy are you saying that Iâll be alone when I have you?â
You blinked, trying to process what Yoongi had just said. His voice, low and warm, carried a weight that wasnât there a moment ago. You wanted to laugh, to brush it off like the teasing banter you two always shared, but the way his dark eyes held yours made it impossible. âI have you for always, right, princess? Youâre not going to leave me for someoneâŠbeneath us, right?â
What?
His words seemed like he was pointing to another thing, like what he was asking you was a promise to be set in stone and not a mere assurance on his part. What was the real second female lead to say in situation like this?
âO-of course! Weâre best friends! N-now letâs get out of here. I saw this beautiful necklace in that shop. Itâs going to look beautiful on her. Maybe if you buy her that, then sheâd forgive you for spending your birthday away from her,â you joked to deflect him, standing up and gathering your purse to escape the situation you found yourself in before he could even blink.
Think, Y/N. Think.
You gripped the stem of your wine glass, staring blankly at the flickering candle in the center of the table. The plot was veering off course, drifting further from the original narrative you knew by heart. Yoongi wasnât supposed to be here with you, his steady presence upending the delicate balance of the story.
The main lead wasnât supposed to stay by your side like this
Across the room, Yoongi was speaking with one of his fatherâs acquaintances, his posture relaxed but exuding the quiet authority that came so naturally to him. It gave you a few precious moments to breatheâand to think.
Ever since Paris, Yoongi almost never let you out of his sight. He would spend every free time of his with you. You couldnât even refuse because he would get so suspicious. His best friend never said no to him, he knew that. Your previous actions of distancing yourself from him resulted in him latching on to you. What could you do to push him in the right direction which was to be with her?
What was the next canon event?
And then it hit you.
The company gala. The turning point. That was when he would bring her, the female lead, into the lionâs den. His familyâs icy disapproval, their sharp-edged words of disdain, and their outright rejection of his choice would culminate in a dramatic declaration. Yoongi would stand by her side, rebel against his family, and announce that she was the one he wanted to marry.
It was a pivotal scene. A non-negotiable in the grand arc of his story.
You exhaled shakily. If you could just steer him toward that event, everything will fall back into place. You just needed to figure out when it was happening now that the timeline was unraveling in ways you couldnât predict.
You just had another problem, though. The man that was now walking back to you was acting like someone who had his heart set on another, so unlike the Min Yoongi from the manhwa who only had eyes for her. His attention was unwavering, but it should not have been pointed to you but to her. The way his gaze softened whenever he looked at you, his refusal to leave your sideâit was all wrong. None of it fit.
âSorry about that,â Yoongiâs voice broke through your thoughts as he returned to the table. He slid back into his seat, his sharp eyes scanning your face. âYou okay? You look⊠distracted.â
You forced a smile, waving a hand dismissively. âIâm fine. Just lost in thought.â
âAbout what?â He tilted his head, genuinely curious, and the warmth in his gaze made your stomach twist. He did hope that your attention was not being diverted by someone he didnât even want to mention. He couldnât even understand why the thought of you with someone else didnât sit right with him. He couldnât understand why he had this urge to remove the pest away from you.
âDoesnât you company have an annual gala? I was thinking of what to wear. When is it again?â you asked, taking a sip of your drink to hide your nerves.
He was looking at you as though deep in thought, as though you were forgetting something. He tilted his head to the side, âYou know itâs always in December. You always choose your dress a year in advance, princess,â Yoongi said, his voice laced with mild curiosity. He leaned back in his chair, crossing his arms as he studied you. âWhy? Youâve never been one to care much about those kinds of things before.â
Your breath caught at his words. You always choose your dress a year in advance, princess. The familiarity, the ease with which he said it, threw you off. That lineâit didnât belong here. Not in this timeline. Not in this version of the story where your role was supposed to be temporary, a placeholder in the grand narrative between him and her.
âRight,â you said, forcing a light laugh that didnât quite reach your eyes. âGuess I forgot for a moment. Been busy, you know.â
Yoongi didnât buy it. His gaze sharpened, a hint of amusement mingled with curiosity. âYou? Forget? Thatâs not like you.â He leaned forward, resting his elbows on the table, his posture relaxed but his eyes piercing. âWhatâs really going on?â
The intensity in his gaze made your stomach twist again. Stay calm. Donât let him see.
âNothingâs going on,â you said, a touch too quickly. You took another sip of your drink, using the motion to avoid his eyes.
âAnyway, Decemberâs coming up fast, and Iâm guessing youâre planning to bring her, right?â You kept your tone light, as if the question didnât weigh heavily on your chest.
Yoongiâs expression shifted, the smirk fading as his brows furrowed slightly. âHer?â
You swallowed hard. âYou know⊠the one youâve been calling and texting all the time.â You gestured vaguely, hoping to seem indifferent. âThe woman youâve beenâwell, I thought you were planning to introduce her to your family at the gala.â
Yoongi smiled again, but this time, it didnât reach his eyes.
âLetâs see, princess.â
âAdmit that you had fun,â Taehyung teased you as he drove you home.
You couldnât help the smile that crept across your lips. Against all odds, youâd genuinely enjoyed yourself. You did have fun. You always thought that movie dates were boring and full of clichĂ©, but not with him. With Taehyung, everything felt effortlessâlight and uncomplicated, like breathing.
âFine,â you conceded with mock reluctance, your tone carrying the weight of faux irritation. âIt was a funâŠâ
âDate,â he finished smoothly, his eyes glinting with amusement as your voice trailed off.
Your cheeks burned at his audacity, the straightforwardness of the word stealing your ability to respond for a moment. A "date"? Could you even call it that? The way your heart fluttered betrayed any argument you might have tried to form.
You glanced away, fidgeting with the strap of your bag as thoughts tangled in your mind. Was it okay to feel this way? To bask in fleeting moments of happiness when the life you were living wasnât truly yours? When you were still determined to set things right, to restore the balance of a narrative that had gone astray?
So caught up in your musings, you barely noticed the car slowing to a stop in the estateâs driveway. The towering grand doors loomed ahead, a stark reminder of the world youâd return to the moment you stepped out.
âThank you,â Taehyungâs voice pulled you from your thoughts. It was quiet, genuine, and when you turned to look at him, his face was softer than youâd ever seen it.
âFor what?â you asked, your voice barely above a whisper.
âFor being here,â he replied simply, his gaze holding yours.
The weight of his sincerity pressed against your chest, making it harder to breathe. Before you could respond, he leaned in, closing the distance between you. The world seemed to slow as his hand moved to cup your face, his fingers brushing against your skin with a tenderness that made your heart stutter.
Your breaths mingled, your eyes fluttering shut as his lips hovered so close to yours it was almost unbearable. You could feel the moment hanging on a fragile thread, teetering on the edge of something irreversible.
The roomâs golden hues seemed to dim as the sound of the car horn echoed through the driveway, shattering the fragile intimacy between you and Taehyung. You jolted back, your heart pounding in your chest as if caught in an act of betrayalâthough you hadnât technically done anything wrong. Yet.
Taehyung sighed, his expression softening as he glanced toward the car behind him. âLooks like your knight in shining armor doesnât know how to wait,â he said lightly, though there was a hint of tension in his voice.
You managed a shaky laugh, your hand gripping the strap of your bag tightly. âHeâs just⊠overprotective.â
âRight,â Taehyung said, leaning back in his seat. His eyes met yours, warm and understanding, but with a flicker of something elseâsomething that made your chest tighten. âStill, I meant what I said. Thanks for tonight.â
Before you could respond, the honk came again, sharper this time, as if Yoongi were making a point. You turned to glance at his car, the sleek black exterior glinting under the estateâs lights. Even from this distance, you could feel his piercing gaze locked on you.
âGoodnight, Taehyung,â you said hurriedly, fumbling with the door handle.
Taehyung smiled, though it didnât quite reach his eyes this time. âGoodnight, Y/N.â
You stepped out of the car and started toward the grand door, the cold evening air biting at your skin. Yoongiâs car door slammed shut behind you, and the sound of his footsteps was a quiet storm approaching. You didnât dare look back, your heart a riot of guilt, frustration, and confusion.
âPrincess,â Yoongiâs voice cut through the quiet, smooth and controlled, but laced with an edge you couldnât ignore.
You stopped in your tracks, turning slowly to face him. He was already close, his dark eyes scanning your face like a puzzle he couldnât quite solve. His suit was immaculate, as always, but there was an undercurrent of tension in his postureâshoulders just a little too stiff, jaw a little too tight.
âYouâre back late,â he said, his tone deceptively casual.
âI went to see a movie with Taehyung,â you replied, keeping your voice neutral.
At the mention of Taehyung, Yoongiâs gaze flicked past you to the car that was now idling at the end of the driveway. You followed his line of sight and felt a pang of unease as his expression shifted. His brows raised slightly as he studied Taehyung through the window, his head tilting just enough to convey an air of quiet disdain.
And then he smirkedâa slow, deliberate curl of his lips that sent an unfamiliar shiver down your spine. It wasnât the Yoongi you were used to seeing. In that moment, he was something else entirely: sharp, commanding, almost cruel. The kind of presence that demanded submission without a word.
âWhat did you say his last name was, princess?â he asked, still watching Taehyung with that same unsettling smirk. His tone was light, but there was something in itâsomething darkâthat made your heart beat faster.
âKim?â you replied thoughtlessly, your mind too preoccupied with wanting to escape the tension. âWhy did you ask?â
Finally, he turned his attention back to you, his gaze softening just enough to make the moment feel surreal. The shift was so subtle, so practiced, that it left you second-guessing the sharpness youâd just seen. He reached out, his arm sliding around your shoulders with an ease that felt both natural and calculated.
âNo reason, princess,â he said smoothly, steering you toward the grand doors of the estate. âJust⊠curious.â
The warmth of his arm contrasted sharply with the coldness that lingered in the air. It was disarming, the way he could shift so easily between rolesâbetween the man you knew and the one you werenât sure you ever wanted to meet again.
As he guided you inside, you cast one last glance over your shoulder. Taehyungâs car hadnât moved, the figure inside still watching. You couldnât see his face, but you imagined the tension mirrored your own.
When the doors shut behind you, the weight of Yoongiâs presence beside you grew heavier. His hand rested lightly against your shoulder, his touch far gentler than the unease simmering just beneath the surface.
"Donât you have better things to do than come to my dress fitting? Like, I donât know, actually run your empire or something?" you asked, stepping out of the fitting room with a huff.
Yoongi sat sprawled on the plush sofa, one arm draped lazily along the backrest, a glass of champagne balanced effortlessly in his other hand. He looked utterly at ease, as if this boutique was his second home and not a place he had followed you to.
He shrugged, âWell, we canât have you running away from me again, can we?â
âFor the last time, I didnât run away! I was in Paris because croissant sounded nice that day-â
âSure, princess,â he agreed condescendingly. Yoongiâs gaze swept over you, lingering a moment longer than you expected. âOn the other hand, you look immaculate in that dress,â he said, his voice low and smooth. âYouâre going to make the rest of the gala feel underdressed.â
Heat crept up your neck at his words, but you quickly masked it with a scoff. âFlattery doesnât suit you, Yoongi. Save it for the boardroom orâbetter yetâfor her.â
He raised an eyebrow, swirling the champagne in his glass as if you hadnât just tried to divert the conversation. âHer?â he echoed, tilting his head with mock curiosity.
You rolled your eyes, refusing to meet his gaze. âYes, her. The one you met in the previous ball? The waitress? The one youâll be introducing to your family at the gala, remember? Does she ring a bell?â
âWeâre still talking about that?â Yoongi asked, his tone laced with amusement as he leaned back into the plush sofa. The glass of champagne in his hand tilted slightly, catching the light as he swirled the golden liquid. âWhy are you so invested in my relationship with her?â
âIâm just concerned and curious as a friend.â
He chuckled softly, setting his glass down on the table beside him. âCurious, huh? And here I thought you were just jealous.â
Your eyes widened in disbelief. âJealous?â
Yoongi leaned forward slightly, resting his elbows on his knees, his gaze never leaving yours. âYou keep bringing her up. Youâre obsessed with the idea of me introducing her to my family, of me texting her. You sure this isnât just about you not wanting to share me?â
Your face burned, and you turned away, pretending to adjust the dress in the mirror. âYouâre ridiculous and I refuse to discuss this further,â you muttered. âIâm going to buy this!â You announced before stalking back to the fitting room to avoid wondering about why your heart was skipping a beat and why you shouldnât venture into that.
You were huffing as you tried to reach for the zipper behind you when the curtain suddenly opened and Yoongi stepped in, making the room felt impossibly small. You instinctively turned your back to him, clutching at the unzipped dress as though a protection against whatever this was.
âWhat are you doing here?!â
Yoongi leaned casually against the side of the fitting room, his smirk firmly in place. âHelping you, obviously,â he said as if it were the most natural thing in the world.
âI donât need your help!â you snapped, tugging at the zipper yourself but struggling to reach it.
âDoesnât look like it,â he said smoothly, taking a step closer. His fingers brushed against yours as he gently moved your hand away. âRelax, princess. Iâll take care of it.â
You froze, your heart pounding as his hands moved to the zipper. His touch was surprisingly delicate, his fingers grazing your back as he carefully pulled the zipper up. The sound of the zipper seemed deafening in the silence.
âThere,â he said softly, his voice low and close to your ear. âAll done.â
You were about to turn around when he stopped you. You met his dark eyes through the mirror, and the intensity in his gaze held you captive. His hands lingered lightly on your shoulders, warm against the smooth fabric of the dress. There was something unreadable in his expressionâa mix of curiosity, amusement, and something far deeper that you couldnât quite name.
âYouâre very beautiful, princess. Do you know that?â he whispered, resting his chin on your delicate shoulder.
âYoongi, what are you doing?â
He was quiet for a moment as though in contemplation whether to say what he wanted to say. Like in the manhwa, Yoongi was calculating. He never did anything without a reason, one of which would benefit him. âI had a nightmare the night after the ball,â he finally confessed, his voice low and almost distant, as if recalling something that lingered in his mind. âWe were on the yacht. I think it was a party. You were there⊠She was there. I was there. And the yacht⊠it slammed into a rock. The two of you were thrown off.â
If he felt your body went rigid, he didnât mention. He never broke eye contact, his arms around your waist as he told you of his dream. The one exactly what happened in the manhwaâ the one where the main lead chose to save the main female lead first, only to find out the it was already late for the second female lead.
His body was so close that you could feel the slight tremble in his arms as he spoke, his fingers grazing your waist with the same careful intensity.
You met his gaze in the mirror again, and something twisted in your stomach. There was an almost predatory look in his eyes, but there was something else tooâsomething far more vulnerable, raw. He didnât break eye contact, and his grip on you tightened just slightly, as though he wanted to hold on, as though he was afraid youâd slip away.
âIn my dream,â he continued, his voice barely a whisper, âI saw you die because I saved her first. It felt so real, like I was remembering something that already happened.â He paused, and you felt the weight of his words sink in. âWhy would I save her first when I know I canât lose you?â
 âItâs just a dreamâŠâ you tried to console him. How could he remember something that happened in the ending? Was the barrier between the characters and the plot weakening? What was changing? And how could you go back to your own world when he was holding onto you so tight as though if he looked away, youâd disappear?
âIt is, right? Itâs not going to happen... Iâll make sure of it.â
December came.
It was the month you were both dreading and anticipating. You were almost at the end of the story, and so far, you did your absolute best to let their love story unfold without a second female lead antagonizing it. You did your part by staying away from them. One problem though, the male lead was not acting like he was written in the manhwa. He was not acting like a man in love should be to her. Instead, he was out there sticking to you like
It was safe to say that Min Yoongi went rouge.
You did not know what to expect in the annual gala. You no longer have the upper hand. You were in the blind as though you were a real character and no longer a reader. You feared that the longer you stayed in this fictional world, the more likely that youâd be incorporated in the story and no longer as a second female lead that could just easily disappear.
You needed answers on how to escape from this fictional world. Answers eluded you. Worse still, so did the only person who seemed to see you for who you were. Taehyung. Since that night, not once did Taehyung answer you calls nor respond to your numerous messages. You tried asking your trusted staff about him, but even they were mummed. It was only your closest maid who whispered to you what transpired and how Taehyungâs budding business empire had crumbled overnight, crushed under the weight of lawsuitsâtax evasion, fraud, and other accusations you couldnât fathom. The news left you hollow. You hadnât seen this coming. The man who had been your one source of normalcy, the one who made you feel like a real person instead of a pawn in someone elseâs story, had disappeared into the shadows of scandal. You thought to yourself that maybe you really didnât know him at all and that it was best to just focus on how to once and for all, leave this universe.
But who could you ask?
You continued anxiously tapping your heels on the marbled flooring, observing the guests. You were in the corner, trying to hide in the shadows so you could freely look for her. He would be bringing her, right?
Where is she?
Your eyes scanned the room again, trying to keep your presence hidden in the shadows. The guests were mingling, lost in the glitter of conversation and champagne. Laughter bubbled up in the air, but none of it felt real. Not like it should have. None of this was real, in fact. This was a fictional world where you were stuck in.
You wondered what would happen if you stopped playing her role. But before you could dwell on that thought, the door opened again, and you stiffened. You were expecting to see the main female lead, yet instead, it was Yoongi. The man of the hour. He entered the room and all the guests he passed greeted and congratulated him for setting another record in his empire, yet his eyes always returned to you. Where was she? This was not supposed to be like this. Yet, you knew in the back of your mind that something integral changed. You were in denial about how you no longer had control over this, that you might as well be truly in the story now, no longer an observer, no longer able to hide behind the pages of the manhwa.
You stepped back involuntarily, no longer feeling the courage you had faked for so long. You lost control. You had to find a way out. However, when you slipped away and turned the corner, you bumped into an old, yet dignified woman. You bowed in apologies when it dawned upon you.
You have seen her before.
Slowly, your eyes lifted to hers. You knew her. She was the woman who gave you the manhwa⊠How was she in this world?!
Your mouth hanged agape as the corner of her lips lifted, her eyes crinkling when she saw the dawn of recognition on her face. âI told you reading it will change your mind.â
âItâs you,â you whispered, taking an unsteady step back. Your eyes darted over her, as if trying to piece together a puzzle that didnât belong in this world. âH-how⊠How are you here? Whatâs going on? Y-you have to help me. Why am I here? How can I leave?!â
She studied you for a moment, her gaze steady, unreadable. âYouâre here because someone wants you here, dear.â
âI donât want to be here! I want to go back.â
Her head tilted slightly, her calm demeanor unwavering. âBut why? What do you have in your old life that you so desperately want to return to? Arenât you alone there? Didnât you have no one to love you?â
âThatâs not the point!â you shot back, a tremor running through your voice. âAnd itâs not different here. No one loves meâno one even knows the real me.â
Her smile deepened, a glint of somethingâmischief, perhaps?âin her eyes. âAh, but who do you think was desperate enough, filled with enough sorrow, to pull you into this universe?â
Your breath caught, confusion clouding your mind. âI⊠I donât understand.â
âWhen she died,â the woman began, her voice lowering, as if unveiling a truth long buried, âthe manhwa ended. But did you think the characters would simply cease to exist? No, dear. They continued, burdened by the pain of their story. Yoongi was devastated. He regretted everythingâevery word, every choice, every moment that led to her death. He mourned her. His sorrow was so great, it transcended the storyâs limits and reached you.â
Your head spun. âMe?â you repeated weakly, disbelief dripping from your voice.
âDear, you are her. Just in a different universe. Itâs the reason why you sided with her, why you felt for her, why her character called on you, why her pain felt like your own. You are her.â
âI donât want to be her,â you said, the words tumbling out in a rush. âI didnât ask for this. I didnât choose this. Pleaseâjust send me back to my own universe.â
The woman sighed, her expression softening, though her eyes retained their strange, knowing glimmer. âThe only way out,â she said slowly, âis through. The manhwa will only release you when its story ends. And you know how it ends, donât you?â
A cold realization began to settle in your chest. âWhen he marries the female lead,â you murmured, dread weaving through every syllable. Your words hung in the air, heavy and final.
The sharp sound of footsteps echoed down the corridor, breaking your trance. You barely had time to gather your thoughts before a familiar voice cut through the suffocating stillness.
âThere you are. Iâve been looking for you. What are you doing here?â
Yoongiâs low, commanding tone sent a jolt through you, but it was his gripâfirm but not harshâas his hand closed around your arm that made your breath hitch.
You turned to face him, his dark eyes locking onto yours. They were intense, holding a darkness that made your stomach churn. Something simmered beneath his composed exterior, something unsettling.
âHow long have you been standing there?â you asked, your voice unsteady.
His lips quirked into a small, unreadable smile. âI just arrived, princess,â he said, the pet name rolling off his tongue like silk. âWhat are you doing here? Alone?â
âIâŠâ You hesitated, your mind racing for an excuse. âI was just talking toââ
When you turned back, the old woman was gone.
Your heart sank, panic surging through you. The corridor where she had stood moments ago was now empty, as though she had vanished into thin air.
Yoongi frowned, his grip on your arm tightening slightly. âTalking to who?â he pressed, his voice dropping.
You forced yourself to meet his gaze, but the weight of it was crushing. âNo one,â you said quickly, your voice barely above a whisper. âShe mustâve left before you got here.â
Yoongi looked down at you, his expression calm, his gaze steady. Yet, something about the way he held himselfâthe deliberate gentleness, the faint curve of his lipsâmade unease coil tightly in your chest. A part of you whispered that this tenderness was a mask, that he wasnât as naĂŻve or benign as he seemed.
But then he smiled.
It was a tender smile, soft around the edges, and for a fleeting moment, your doubts dissolved like mist under the morning sun.
âLetâs get back to the party, princess,â he said, his voice a soothing balm against the tension humming in your veins. âYour parents arrived.â
Your steps faltered. âMy parents?â
The mention of them sent a jolt through you. They were a peripheral presence in the story, barely more than a footnote in the manhwaâs narrative. They were always overseas, managing their company, distant figures who left their daughter to fend for herself. Their absence was a plot device, a catalyst for your dependence on Yoongi.
But now, they were here.
âW-why are they here?â you asked, your voice trembling despite your effort to steady it.
Yoongi stopped walking, turning to face you fully. His expression didnât change, but there was something unsettling in the way his eyes softened, like he was trying to calm a skittish animal. âDonât worry about it,â he said, his tone quiet yet resolute.
The words only made your pulse quicken. He offered his arm to you, his demeanor so effortless, so composed, as though he hadnât just upended everything you thought you knew about the storyline. âShall we?â
Were you imagining things, or were the guestsâ gazes lingering just a little too long as you and Yoongi re-entered the ballroom? Conversations paused, eyes flickering in your direction, a murmur of whispers spreading like ripples across the sea of elegantly dressed attendees.
Yoongi, as always, was composed. His hand rested lightly on the small of your back, guiding you through the crowd with an ease that belied the tension curling in your chest. You tried to focus on the glittering chandeliers, the music, the familiar opulence of the space, but the weight of the stares made it impossible.
âThereâs our little girl!â
The warm, dignified voice cut through the hum of the crowd, pulling your attention to its source. Your mother stood near the edge of the room, resplendent in a gown that rivaled the grandeur of the occasion. Her face lit up with delight as she strode toward you, arms outstretched.
âY-youâre hereâŠâ you stammered, shock rendering you momentarily immobile as she pulled you into an embrace. Her movements were graceful yet firm, as though sheâd been waiting for this moment.
âOf course, weâre here,â she said, stepping back to study your face, her smile warm but tinged with something calculating. âWhy wouldnât we be? Itâs not every day that our dear daughter gets engaged.â
Your heart raced, panic rising as you tried to process what was happening. âI⊠I donât understand,â you managed, your voice trembling as you looked between your parents and Yoongi.
Yoongi stepped closer, the warmth of his hand on your back turning into a subtle yet firm pressure. His voice dropped to a low murmur, meant only for your ears, as his sharp eyes held yours in an unrelenting gaze.
âItâs all been arranged, princess,â he said softly, his words almost tender but laced with steel. âYour parents and mine have been discussing this for some time. They thought tonight was the perfect opportunity to make it official.â
Your heart pounded in protest, the world around you narrowing to just him and the enormity of what he was saying. âI didnât agree to this,â you said, your voice trembling but resolute. âThis is wrong! You donât want this, Yoongi. You have her. And Iââ
âYou what?â he interrupted sharply, his eyes narrowing. âYou have Taehyung?â
âNo!â you snapped, shaking your head. âThis isnât about him. This is about them deciding for us. This is about tying your life to mine when you donât even want to!â
He tilted his head slightly, his smirk returning but without any real humor. âWho says I donât want to?â
âYoongiââ
âLook, princess,â he cut you off, his voice soft but commanding. âWe just have to act like weâre going along with this. Just pretend. Can you do that for me?â
Your breath caught, and you searched his face for some hint of his true feelings. But all you found was a calm determination that left you more uncertain than ever.
The murmur of the crowd reached you, the polite applause growing louder as you turned toward the center of the room. Yoongi extended his hand, his posture exuding confidence and charm as he guided you toward the raised platform where your parents and his waited.
The spotlight followed the two of you as you ascended albeit reluctantly, every step feeling heavier than the last. The room seemed to hush, the weight of their expectations bearing down on you.
âLadies and gentlemen,â Yoongi began smoothly, raising his glass in a toast. His voice carried easily, commanding the attention of the entire ballroom. âTonight is a special night, not just for our families, but for me. Iâm honored to announce my engagement to this incredible woman beside me, my childhood best friend, the only woman who have never left my side. I cannot live without her, and soon, Iâll never have to.â
The applause erupted, deafening and overwhelming. You felt trapped, the walls closing in as Yoongi turned to you, his smile perfectly composed for the crowd.
âShall we make it convincing, princess?â Yoongi murmured, his voice low and unreadable, carrying a weight you couldnât quite place.Â
Before you could respond, he cupped your face with a gentleness that felt at odds with the deliberate precision in his movements. His touch was warm, grounding, yet it sent a jolt through youâa mix of dread and something far more dangerous.Â
Your breath hitched.Â
Never in your wildest dreams did you think Min Yoongiâthe composed, untouchable Min Yoongiâwould lower his head to capture your lips. Even more unthinkable was the way his kiss shattered every expectation, unraveling something deep within you.Â
Yoongi kissed like a man starved. His lips moved against yours with a consuming intensity, a hunger that left no room for hesitation. It wasnât gentle or tentative; it was deliberate, almost punishing. He took and took, claiming you with every movement of his mouth. His tongue brushed against yours, coaxing and demanding at the same time, leaving you breathless.Â
His free hand cradled your face, tilting it to him as if to ensure you couldnât escapeânot that your body seemed capable of responding. Your knees felt weak, your heart thundered in your chest, and the noise of the crowd faded into an inconsequential blur.Â
For a moment, there was only him.Â
The crowd erupted into applause, the sound jolting you back to reality. The cheers and whistles surrounded you, the noise pressing in like a tidal wave. You blinked, realizing that your hands had gripped the fabric of his jacket, as though anchoring yourself to him.Â
Yoongi pulled back slowly, his gaze locking with yours. His eyes were dark, burning with something you couldnât decipher. His lips curled into a faint, triumphant smile, as if he knew exactly what effect heâd had on you.Â
You barely had a moment to catch your breath before he took your hand in his. The velvet box you hadnât even noticed being opened now sat empty in his other hand. And then, before you could process what was happening, there it wasâa massive diamond glinting on your finger, its size almost blinding under the ballroom lights. It was familiar. How could it not when it was the same ring he won in the auction?
Why did he have this now? When was this entire fiasco prepared?
Your chest tightened as you stared at the ring, the weight of it feeling heavier than it should have.Â
Yoongi raised your hand, pressing a kiss to your knuckles, his gaze never leaving yours. To the crowd, it was the perfect picture of a devoted fiancĂ©. But to you, it was something far more unnerving.Â
âYou wear it well,â he murmured, his voice low enough that only you could hear.Â
The applause swelled around you again, the sound nearly deafening as you tried to steady your racing thoughts.Â
This wasnât part of the story. This wasnât how it was supposed to go.Â
But Yoongi, ever the master of control, seemed to have rewritten the script entirely. And you were left standing in the middle of his narrative, unable to tell where the performance ended and the truth began.
The evening air outside was cool and calm, a sharp contrast to the warmth and chatter of the grand party you had just left behind. As the crowd dwindled and the night settled, Yoongi offered you his arm, escorting you toward his sleek black car. His movements were unhurried, deliberate, and his dark eyes lingered on you for a moment longer than usual.
The night seemed to be endless. You were never left alone even for a moment. You wanted nothing more than to lie down and plan your next step. You had to, or else you were stuck here.
âIâm sorry I missed your speech,â you said as the car pulled away from the glowing mansion. âIâm sure it was great.â
He glanced at you, a faint smile tugging at the corners of his lips. âThatâs fine. Youâll always be here to hear my next speech anyway.â
You returned his smile, but it was brittle, not quite reaching your eyes. Had your plan succeeded, this would be one of your last moments with him. Youâd return to your world, leaving this Yoongiâand this universeâbehind. The thought tightened something in your chest, but you pushed it aside.
âIâm sorry about the sudden engagement, princess.â His voice was soft, laced with what sounded like regret, but his eyes told a different story. âMy hands were tied. Our families went behind our backs, and I couldnât do anything about it.â
Lies. All of it.
What you didnât know was that Yoongi had orchestrated everything. He had whispered into the right ears, pulled strings behind the scenes, and crafted a perfect storm to ensure this engagement would bind you to him. He didnât care what the truth was, whether or not you were from this world. He cared about one thing onlyâkeeping you by his side.
Something in him had shifted the moment he realized how easily you could slip away. The very idea of losing youâto this world, to Taehyung, to anythingâwas unbearable. It drove him to actions he never thought himself capable of, cruel and unapologetic. Taehyung was out of the picture now, his budding empire crushed under the weight of scandal. Yoongi had ensured that, and he felt no remorse.
What mattered was you.
You offered him a smile that didnât quite reach your eyes because if what you were planning was successful, youâd return to your own world and heâd be left in this universe. Yoongi quietly offered you a champagne as the driver smoothly drove back to the mansion.
âAre we celebrating something?â you asked, eyeing the sparkling liquid.
âJustâŠfor always, princess,â he said softly, the words carrying an undertone you couldnât quite place.
You hesitated, but took the glass, sipping the sparkling liquid. The conversation flowed effortlessly, a dance of shared humor, mutual interests, and a surprising depth of understanding. With each exchange, you were reminded of why you had felt drawn to Yoongi in the first place. For all his intensity and mystery, he was undeniably charming, and being with him felt easy in a way you hadnât expected.
The spirit of alcohol definitely made you forget about the ruckus that happened tonight. If he said that he didnât have anything to do with it, who were you to question him when he was characterized in the manhwa as someone who was good?
Your conversation with him was fun. It was grounding.
Until the world began to tilt.
Dizziness crept over you, subtle at first but quickly overpowering. Your fingers loosened around the champagne flute as your head grew heavier, and before you knew it, your cheek was pressed against his shoulder.
âYoongiâŠâ you murmured, your voice weak as you leaned against him.
He steadied you, his hand moving to cradle your head as you slumped against his shoulder. âItâs alright,â he said softly, his voice carrying a note of finality.You tried to sit up, to stay awake, but your body refused to cooperate. Everything blurred together, and then, there was nothing.
Yoongiâs hand moved to steady you, his touch gentle as he adjusted your position so you rested more comfortably against him. He looked down at you, his expression unreadable, before shifting his gaze toward the driver.
âTo the airport,â he instructed, his voice calm but firm.
The driver nodded without hesitation, changing course.
Yoongi turned his attention back to you, his jaw tightening as he studied your sleeping face. Heâd heard everything earlierâthe old womanâs cryptic words, your desperate plea to leave, and your determination to escape this world.
It all made sense. The nightmare that brought terrors in his heart really happened. You died because of his foolishness, because he chose someone else over you when he knew he couldnât survive a world without you. It had been like living his worst nightmare all over again, the fear of losing someone he wasnât ready to let go. But this time, he refused to let it happen.
He wasnât a religious man, but your presence in this universe felt like a miracleâa second chance, no matter how strange or impossible. Whether you were the original her or not didnât matter. You were here. You were his.
And he wouldnât let you leave.
His gaze darkened, his grip on your hand tightening slightly.
âYouâre not going anywhere, princess,â he murmured softly, more to himself than to you.
The first female lead was no longer his focus. She was gone.
Now, it was you.
And Yoongi would do whatever it took to keep you by his sideâeven if it meant tying you to him so tightly you could never untangle the threads.
tethered pt. 2 | jjk
â° pairing. â emo!jk x reader
â° genre. â early 2000s au, best friend's older brother, childhood friends to lovers, smut, light angst.
â° word count. â 10k+
â° warnings. â swearing, family issues, friendship betrayal, mention of drugs/alcohol, smut [ cunnilingus, rough sex, ...idk how else to describe it ] reader and jk are both 18+, minors dni.
â° a/n. long awaited part 2! the amount of love i received from part one was overwhelming and it means to world to meet that so many people instantly fell in love with this couple. another part is already in the works!
â° taglist. @ahgasegotarmy116 @hellbornsworld @kissyfacekoo @littlestarstinyseven @skzthinker @cuntessaiii @nikkiordonez12 @ilikekpop-c @busanbby-jjk @xjjk187 @aloverga @kookcobain @mzeji @bxcndd @hoseokteardrop @canyon-lwt @hopefulrascalstatesmantoad @jksteponme @parkinglot-nights @chromekingkong @jk97bam [ if i didn't tag u it's because tumblr didn't allow me to! ]
part one | masterlist | ao3 | buy me a coffee?
âDid you seriously think I wouldnât find out?â Somi is glaring daggers at you upon opening the front door, arms crossed across her chest as she eyes you. Her lips are twisted into a disgusted snarl, youâve never seen her this upset before.
You swallow the lump in your throat, âFind out about what?â
She cocks her head to the side, squinting her eyes at you. âDonât act like you donât know.â
Fuck, youâre screwed. If there were a list of all the reasons why you shouldnât have had sex with Jeon Jungkook, the simple fact of him being your best friendâs brother would be number one.
With closed eyes, you let out a relieved sigh. As much as you wanted to wait to tell Somi about hooking up with Jungkook, itâd be an enormous weight off your shoulders not having to hide it any longer. Itâd only been a few days since it happened, but you really hate keeping secrets from her.
âHowâd you find out?â You question, chewing on your bottom lip.
âMy parents told me, duh.â
Holy crap, Jungkook told his parents the two of you had sex? Why the fuck would he do that?
âThey did?â You ask, completely bewildered.
âWell, yeah!â Somi finally uncrosses her arms, demeanor completely changing as her gaze softens, âWhy didnât you tell me your sister got engaged?â
Thank God you didnât elaborate any further.
âOh! Because they probably arenât gonna last.â You respond, stepping into the Jeon household once Somi allows you to enter. Itâs been a few days since youâve been here, mostly due to the fact that you were completely avoiding Jungkook.
The empty condom in his trash bin had been plaguing your mind nonstop, you could barely even sleep from how embarrassed you were. Why did he fake his orgasm? What if he didn't fake an orgasm and just shot a blank? Did you do something wrong? Was he not attracted to you? Why was the condom empty?Â
Seeing him in person wouldâve only intensified the thoughts roaming in your head, so you avoided him at all costs up until now. Youâd promised the Jeon siblings that youâd finally see Twilight with them and their friends despite not being able to function correctly around either of them.Â
Somi snickers, following you into the living room. âOoh, thatâs not nice.â
âItâs true, though,â you explain, âsheâs still so young, only a few years older than your brother. I mean, can you picture Jungkook getting married in a few years?â
The regret from that question fills you almost immediately.
âSure,â Somi responds, pausing to greet the eager doberman charging at her. âAs long as he finds the right person. Heâd get married in a heartbeat.â
You want to ask what Somiâs definition of âthe perfect personâ would be for Jungkook or the type of girl sheâd be willing to set him up with. Itâd probably be the unnamed, mysterious redhead you recently dreamed about curb stomping (yikes!).
You donât respond to this, taking a seat on the sofa when the sudden shout of your name has you flinching. Itâs Somiâs parents, excitedly greeting you with open arms as you politely stand to properly hug them. âI feel like itâs been so long since weâve seen you! Howâs your family? We just heard the news about your sister!â Mrs. Jeon ambushes you with questions, all while cradling your face.
âAbout how sheâs making the biggest mistake of her life?â You half-joke.
Mrs. Jeon playfully waves a hand in your direction as she steps into the kitchen, her husband only a few feet behind. âOh, donât say that. Iâm sure the two of them will be very happy together.â She turns to her husband, grabbing his hand, âI just canât believe Imogen is getting married. I still remember when she first started high school.âÂ
Mr. Jeon sighs in disbelief. âI know,â he mumbles, nodding at you. âYouâre up next soon, huh?â
âMaybe she can marry Jungkook,â Mrs. Jeon comments, opening her fridge, âset him straight.â
âGross, Mom. Donât wish that on her.â Somi groans in disgust as she plops down next to you.
Well, that answers your previous question.
âWe should probably get going, right? To make it in time for the trailers?â You ask.
âYeah, we should.â Somi responds, tilting her head up towards the staircase, âJungkook! Hurry up and come downstairs! Weâre ready to go!â
âGimmie a minute!â He shouts back, and a chill runs down your spine. Itâs been too long since youâve heard his voice. The last time you saw him, he was lying naked in his bed; youâre not sure how youâll survive being around him all night knowing what your last encounter was like.
As promised, Jungkook is sliding down the staircase a minute later and nails the landing. Heâs wearing a black Twilight shirt featuring the leading couple, black cargo pants, and, of course, black sneakers. He looks like his usual self until you take a closer look and notice the reddish-black eyeshadow that decorated his eyes. It wasnât much, just enough to make his eyes pop, and it complimented him perfectly. A second later, you see the black nail polish neatly coated on his nails. You have to blink a few times to ensure this is real life and youâre not trapped in a wet dream.
He strolls into the kitchen, ignoring the stares from his parents before digging through the fridge. His mom clears her throat, crossing her arms at him.
âWhat?â He asks, retrieving a two-liter Mountain Dew bottle.Â
âSeriously, Jungkook? The makeup? The nail polish?â She questions, clearly frustrated.
Jungkook cocks his head, unscrewing the soda bottleâs lid. âWhatâs wrong with it? Somiâs wearing the same thing.â
âSon, you know thatâs different.â His father interjects.
Jungkook takes a swig of the soda before responding. âWhy? Because sheâs a girl?â
âItâs not like that, hon. Itâs justâŠwe didnât make a big deal of it when you first started the piercings, and the tattoos, and the hair dye, but thisâŠitâs a little much. Donât you think?â His mother asks.
You want to step in and remind his parents that Jungkook is old enough to make his own decisions and express himself as he pleases, but itâs not your place. Instead, you cheer silently when Somi surprisingly interrupts the discussion. âDid you guys seriously force him to come back home just to criticize how he presents himself, or would you rather have a peaceful summer?â
âWe arenât trying to criticize him, Somi. Weâre just looking out for our child.â Mr. Jeon responds.
âItâs a special occasion, Dad. Is it bad that I wanted to look nice forââ Jungkook abruptly cuts himself short, quickly glancing in your direction before returning his attention to his parents. â...to go see Twilight with my friends?â
What was that about?
Silence passes, and the three stare at each other until Mrs. Jeon sighs defeatedly and says, âNo, thereâs nothing wrong with that, sweetheart. I hope you guys enjoy the movie.â
âWe will,â Jungkook responds, closing the soda bottle lid and placing it back in the fridge. He heads for the front door, beckoning you and Somi to follow behind. Heâs eager to leave the house, quickly swinging the front door open and jogging towards his car.
You and Somi say goodbye to her parents with a promise to be home by eleven before following in Jungkookâs footsteps, who already has the car running. As you wait for Somi to finish locking the front door, Jungkook rolls down his window and shouts, âHurry up! Letâs go!â
âWill you calm down?!â Somi throws back, rolling her eyes as she finally removes the house key from the lock.
You follow her towards Jungkookâs car, sliding into the backseat as you pretend not to notice Jungkook watching you through the rearview mirror. He wants you to look at him, but you refuse, busying yourself by buckling your seatbelt and convincing Somi to do the same. Once Jungkook is convinced youâre not going to do so much as glance at him, he puts the car in drive and pulls into the road.
Somi talks your ear off in the backseat about whatever comes to mind while you keep your eyes on the window. Itâs hard to not notice Jungkook glancing back at you through the mirror at every red light or stop sign, but you donât dare meet his gaze.
The movie theaterâs parking lot is crowded when you arrive; it takes Jungkook a few minutes to eventually locate a spot. A smile is plastered on his face as he parks the car, eager to see some of his closest friends after being separated for months. He informs you and Somi to disregard anything foolish he friends may say, claiming they arrived early to smoke behind the movie theater, so theyâre more than likely too high to function properly.
Jungkook shrugs when Somi asks why people do that, shoving his hands into his pockets as the three of you approach the theater entrance. "Some people say it makes the movie experience better."
You want to ask Jungkook if he's ever been high, but you can barely even bring yourself to look in his direction, let alone ask him a question. So you're silent as the three of you enter the movie theater, instantly spotting Jungkook's bandmates in the far corner.
Well⊠Jungkook's bandmates and one other guest.
The bubbly redhead greets you guys first, running up to Jungkook with open arms as if they haven't seen each other in a million years. It makes you want to vomit.
You look away as they hug, directing your attention to the concession stand employee who had already been watching you. His name tag reads 'Beomgyu,' and he resembles a younger version of Jungkook, with the same dark hair and similar lip piercings. His eyes stay on you until a customer blocks your path, and you're back to watching Jungkook reunite with his friends.
"Hey, you were the one at that party, right? With Somi?" The redhead asks, squinting her eyes at you.
"Yeah." Is all you respond with, because why in God's name is this girl talking to you right now?
"It's nice to meet you. I'm Scar," she introduces herself, extending a hand for you to shake.
Somi interjects, grabbing ahold of your wrist while glaring at Scar. "Your name is Scarlett."
She drags you along to the ticket booth, mumbling about how she doesn't like nor trust Scar. When you ask for her reasoning, she responds with, "I don't need one. I just don't like her."
At least you're on the same page about that.Â
Still, you can't help but wonder why Somi has a distaste for Scar. You have your petty reasoning for disliking her, but Somi (more than likely) has better knowledge of Scar's personality, so whatever reasons she dislikes her could be legitimate.Â
You're thinking of this as Jungkook orders the tickets for everyone, asking the employee to give him a minute when the friend you recognize as Yugyeom starts tapping his shoulder. "We should go see Saw instead; it just came out."
Jungkook looks genuinely confused at the suggestion. "What? No, we came here to see Twilight."
"So?!" Jaebeom chimes in, eyes red as the devil, "Come on, dude, you've already seen Twilight. Don't you wanna see something new?"
"Fuck no, we're literally in the middle of buying the tickets." Jungkook reminds everyone.
"I kinda wanna see Saw, too."
"Same."
"Yeah, me too."
"I do, too."
Jungkook whips his head around at his sister, "What? Even you?"
Somi scoffs, "Well, yeah! Twilight just seems boring in comparison."
"Come on, guys," the employee interrupts, "you're holding up the line."
Jungkook turns towards you. "Do you still wanna see Twilight?"
Truthfully, you want to go home; but seeing how excited Jungkook was for the movie made you feel something, so you nod. He lets out a relieved sigh.Â
He moves out of the way to allow his friends to buy their tickets first, slipping his sister cash to pay for hers, which she initially rejects. "I don't need your money," she claims.
"Just take it, Somi. I brought it for you."Â
From what you can make out, it's enough to cover her ticket and grab something from the concession stand. The pair of siblings may bicker a lot, but it's nice to know Jungkook still looks out for his younger sister whenever he can.
Somi reluctantly accepts the money and purchases her ticket; you watch as Jungkook follows suit, ordering two tickets for Twilight and stopping you from opening your purse. "Don't worry about it."
"Oh, it's fine. I have enough." You reassure him.
Jungkook laughs to himself, "Why are the two of you like this?" He questions, fishing out crumpled dollar bills from his pocket and handing them to the cashier, who sighs in annoyance, straightening and inspecting each bill before placing it in his register.
You don't know why Jungkook insists on being so nice to you despite your persistence in not speaking to him. A part of you wonders if he thinks this is some kind of date now that the two of you will be separated from the group. It doesn't matter. You don't know why you're overthinking it.
Once all the tickets have been purchased, the seven of you head towards the concession stand. Somi debates pushing herself to the front of the long line, claiming that the theater should make accommodations for those whose movie is starting sooner. Or something like that, you can't really focus with the way Beomgyu is staring at you. You're used to guys always staring, but they tend to shyly look away upon making eye contact.Â
Beomgyu is quite the opposite, staring you down every chance he gets. Your skin feels hot, and you're suddenly anxious under his gaze.Â
When the group ahead of you has finished ordering and is heading off into their theater, you're sure to stick close to Jungkook as you approach the counter. Beomgyu eyes him over once before returning his gaze to you. "What can I get for you guys?"
Jungkook takes the liberty of ordering a large popcorn for the two of you to share and doesn't even get mad when you request a slushie instead of a fountain drink. He doesn't let you pay, swatting your hand away when you absentmindedly reach for your purse. "You seriously have to stop doing that." He mumbles, handing Beomgyu the cash.
Beomgyu quickly prepares the popcorn and Jungkook's drink but takes his time making your slushie. He's sure to fill it to the brim, and you're worried it may accidentally overflow and leave a sticky mess. "You didn't want candy or anything?" He questions, handing you your drink.Â
You shrug, "Maybe Twizzlers, butâ"
Before you can finish, Beomgyu is reaching under the counter and sliding you a pack of Twizzlers. "On me."
"Oh, are you sure?" You ask, hesitant to accept the free candy.
Beomgyu sends Jungkook a cocky smirk before he responds, "Yeah, enjoy the movie."
You thank Beomgyu and pretend to not notice the death glares the two boys are sending one another before walking with Jungkook to your theater. "That guy was weird." He comments.
"Yeah." You agree, but it's definitely not true. Beomgyu was friendly and clearly interested in you, unlike Jungkook, who sent you nonstop, draining mixed signals. If his definition of weird is someone straightforward, then you should start going after weirdos.
Once you're settled in your seats in the back of the theater â per Jungkook's request â he clears his throat and says, "So, I tried messaging you on Facebook. Didn't get anything back."
"Oh, sorry. I haven't been using Facebook that much." You reply, hoping your lame excuse is believable enough.
He nods, eyes bouncing between you and the movie trailers playing in the background. "Yeah, I figured." He says. When you don't respond, he continues, "I would've asked Somi for your number, but I didn't want her to get suspicious or anything."
"That's smart." You admit, nodding in agreement.
"Are you okay?" Jungkook asks suddenly, his full attention to you.
You finally make eye contact, and the expression on his face makes your heart sink. He looks genuinely concerned and confused by your sudden coldness. You hate being so mean to him, but you're too embarrassed to explain the real reason why you've been avoiding him. So you nod and say, "Just a little tired."
It's clear he doesn't believe this; the same expression is still on his face as he refocuses on the movie trailers.Â
You hate how awkward it feels to be around him now. Never in a million years would you have guessed the two of you would end up like this. A week ago, you would've been overjoyed at the idea of being on a movie date with Jungkook, and now you're considering leaving early and catching a taxi home.
The two of you remain silent as the rest of the trailers play on, and Jungkook immediately sits up in his seat when the lights finally dim and the curtains are pulled back further. He's reticent throughout the movie, aside from a muffled chuckle occasionally; he even side-eyes anyone making too much noise.
You enjoy Twilight nonetheless, agreeing with Jungkook that you do, in fact, dress like Bella Swan from time to time. When he asks if you liked it as you're exiting the theater, you tell him it was very nice and that you hope there'll be another movie.
Jungkook smiles at this, tossing his empty cup in a nearby trash bin. "I'm sure there will be. Maybe they'll even cast you as Bella's stunt double since you already have the clothes."
"Shut up." You tease, and it feels nice to joke with him as usual. You may finally have the courage to tell Jungkook why you've been so distant these past few days.
Saw doesn't get out for another few minutes, so you're stuck waiting in the lobby for Somi and everyone else. Jungkook gestures towards the nearly empty slushie cup clutched in your hands, "You get free refills on that, I think."
You take his word, strolling over to the concession stand. Beomgyu spots you immediately and gestures for you to skip around the line. You shake your head, but he still beckons for you to come over. You feel bad, but the line has gotten longer since you were first here, and you really don't want to wait in a long line just for a refill.Â
"What flavor?" He asks once you've slid him your cup.
You tell him anything is fine and he gets to work, combining the cherry and blue raspberry flavors. "How was the movie?"
"It was good. The vampire stuff was cool."
"Have you seen Saw yet? It just came out."
"No, I haven't."
"It's so good; if you wanna give me your number, maybe we can see it together sometime."
What is it with guys offering to take you out to a movie they've already seen? You're not complaining; it's just odd.
Beomgyu is clearly interested in you and has offered to take you out. You'd be silly to pass up on this guy just because your current relationship with your longtime crush is at a standstill. So you accept, scribbling your phone number down on a napkin with your name underneath. He promises to call you once his shift ends and that he looks forward to seeing you.
When you turn to meet up with Jungkook, he's gone. You catch him storming out of the theater, hauling ass to his car.
You run to catch up to him, calling out his name and begging him to slow down.
When he finally does stop, there's a look on his face that you've never seen before. He gets angry all the time, but this was something completely different. "So you were just using me, huh?"
What? What is he talking about?
"Using you for what?"
"To lose your virginity. You just wanted to get it over with, right?" His voice is slightly hushed now but still loud enough for you to feel embarrassed about anyone passing through the parking lot.
"Jungkook, what are you talking about?"
"You used me to lose your virginity, so when you date other guys you can tell them you've had sex before. Is that what this is?"
This accusation hurts, considering that Jungkook was the only guy you've ever been interested in romantically and sexually. You don't know where this theory originated, but you don't like it.
Jungkook continues before you respond, "I tried reaching out and talking to you, and you just blew me off! And yet, here you are, giving your number to random guys! Am I not good enough for you?!"
"It's not like that, Jungkook!" You don't mean to raise your voice at him, but you can't help it. Both of your emotions were at an all-time high.
"Then what is it like?!"
Here goes nothing.
There are already tears forming as you go to explain yourself. "I didn't reach out to you becauseâŠbecause I was embarrassed."
"You were embarrassed to have sex with me?"
"No!" You yell in reassurance, "No, no, no. Of course not. I was embarrassed because I know you didn't finish. I just thought maybe I did something wrong or didn't do enough."
Jungkook quirks a brow at you, "What makes you think I didn't finish?"
You really hate that he's making you explain this. "I saw the condom afterwards; it was empty."
"You went digging in my trash can to find the condom?" Now he looks more disgusted than confused; this is going so horribly.
"No! I saw it when I went to get my phone off the charger."
Jungkook takes a minute to process everything, scratching his chin in deep thought. You can't tell what he's feeling, but he does look hurt. It makes you regret avoiding him in the first place.
"So, you were prepared to never talk to me again over an empty condom?" Despite his stern demeanor, he's clearly shaking as he questions you.
You want to say no, that it wasn't a case, but you can't bring yourself to lie to him again. So you say nothing. Jungkook nods at your lack of response before turning around and walking towards his car. You remain still, frozen in place, watching as he sits on the hood of his car and smokes a cigarette.
If it weren't for Somi finishing her movie within the next few minutes, you would've walked the entire way home.
This bitch is driving you crazy.
Your older sister, Imogen, is home for a few days to start her wedding preparations. The fake bridezilla persona she's putting on bothers you the most, bursting out in tears at the most inconvenient times or having a breakdown about selecting a theme. Deep down, she doesn't care about any of this bullshit; she's like you about parties or big events.
"This is literally the biggest day of my life, and you're being so fucking difficult." Imogen snarls at you, pouring herself a cup of coffee. You're sitting a few feet away on the kitchen counter, staring out the kitchen window. Despite Imogen's occasional yelling and snarky comments, all you can think of is Jungkook.
It's been an entire week since the movie theater incident. You haven't stopped by the Jeon household not once, telling Somi you fell ill and don't want to get her sick. It's another lame excuse, but she buys it, opting to talk to you on the phone daily until you recover.
You have yet to speak to Jungkook; it's not like you've tried. The idea of messaging him on Facebook and not receiving a response makes you anxious. It's hard to believe you subjected him to the same torture not long ago. It doesn't help that Scarlett is suddenly all over his page, commenting on nearly every one of his posts, writing on his wall, or tagging him in pictures. Your recurring dream of curb-stomping her is back in full force.
You sigh at your sister, "Whatever you say, Imogen."
She waves dismissively at you, "Please, don't even talk to me right now."
You hop off the counter in annoyance and stomp off towards the staircase, mumbling, "Fucking drama queen."
"Language." Your mom warns you, flipping through one of the several bridal magazines your sister has stacked on the coffee table.
Imogen scoffs, setting her mug on the counter. "I'm the drama queen? Whenever I talk about my wedding, you throw a fucking fit!"
"Why are you pretending to care about this stupid wedding and that stupid boy you barely even know?!" You shout back from the staircase.
"If my wedding is so stupid, then don't come!"
"I don't even want to go to your stupid wedding, with your stupid fiancé and your stupid red velvet cake that no one's going to fucking eat!"
This is probably the dumbest fight you've ever had.
Imogen doesn't respond to this, advised by your mother not to and to let you stomp up the stairs in a furious rage. You make a beeline straight to your desktop, waking up the computer with a mouse shake and entering your password.
Facebook is already open once you've signed in, Jungkook's page staring right back at you. You're ashamed to admit you'd been cyberstalking him, but you had no choice. Seeing him in person would've been too much, but you still want to ensure he's doing okay.
There's a new post up when you refresh the page; you chew on your bottom lip as you anxiously wait for it to finish loading.
It's a picture of his dirty Chuck Taylor's perched upon a wooden stool. You recognize the background immediately; he's in the treehouse in his backyard. You and Somi would spend hours up there as kids, giving each other manicures and exchanging secrets; now, you can barely look her in the eye without bursting out in tears. You hate how complicated things have become.
A light tap against your door has you swiveling around in your chair. It's Imogen, leaning against your doorframe with her arms crossed. "Who's that?"
"Somi's brother." You respond, scrolling to a photo that actually shows his face.
Imogen steps further into your bedroom, squinting her eyes at the computer screen. "Oh, yeah. Hasn't changed much, has he?" When you remain silent, she asks, "Would it be wrong of me to assume he's the real reason why you're so upset?"
You sigh, letting your shoulders drop. "You'd be very correct, actually."
She nods in understanding, sitting on the edge of your bed. "So, what's going on? You like him?"
"We kind of like each other, I guess." You mumble. Honestly, you're not quite sure how Jungkook feels about you at the moment.
"And Somi doesn't approve of it?"
You snort, "Somi doesn't know. There was nothing to tell her at first, but things have changed."
"Are you guys dating?"
"No. We actually haven't talked in a week. I may have hurt his feelings."
Imogen nods towards your desktop, âWhere is he now?â
You shrug, âHome, I guess.â
She stands, stretching out her limbs. She glances around your room, locates a jacket dangling lifelessly from your doorknob, and tosses it to you. âLetâs go.â
Taking an impromptu trip to the Jeon household had you sweating. What if Jungkook doesnât even want to see you? What if Somi catches you talking and asks whatâs going on?
Each concern you raise is instantly shot down by Imogen, claiming youâre creating excuses to avoid seeing him, how youâre only imagining the worst possible scenarios. You appreciate her overwhelming support but canât help the nervousness creeping through your body as her car approaches the Jeon household.
âRemember, be apologetic but not desperate,â Imogen informs you, putting her car in park in front of the house.
âI am desperate.â You remind her.
âWell, donât let him see it. You got this.â
You thank your sister one last time for the advice before stepping out of her car. Youâre careful to avoid being seen from windows as you make your way into the backyard; not entirely sure what youâd say if Somi were to catch you.
You scale the tree quickly, silently praying the old wooden steps are stable enough to hold your weight.Â
You sigh in relief once youâve reached the top, only to groan at the sight of Scarlett sitting across from you. She looks up from her iPod with a bright smile, quickly pulling out her earbuds as you enter the treehouse. âHey, stranger! Watcha doing here?â
Her enthusiasm really makes you sick. âCame to see Jungkook,â you pause to glance around the tiny, wooden deathtrap, âbut heâs nowhere to be found.â
âHeâll be back soon; went to use the bathroom,â Scarlett informs you, running her hands through her hair. âSo, you guys really like each other, huh?â
What? She knows about that?
âJungkook told you?â You question, trying your best to appear unbothered. Youâre unsure where sheâs going with this, but you have no reason to trust her.
Scarlett nods, âWe tell each other everything. So when he told me you guys werenât talking, I may have devised a plan to help you come around. You do use Facebook, right?â She smirks
Holy shit, all the posts of them together were to make you feel jealous enough to have a conversation with him; and your sworn enemy was the mastermind behind it. It was all a ploy to get under your skin, and you fell right into the trap.Â
âYouâre a stubborn little thing, though. Didnât think itâd take you so long.â She comments, slipping her jacket on.
You shrug, âI didnât think heâd want to talk to me.â
âJungkook always wants to talk to you. I donât mind it, though. You seem good for him.â
Aside from Somi, Scarlett is probably the last person you wouldâve expected to be supportive of your relationship with Jungkook. So, to hear sheâd been secretly rooting for you behind the scenes nearly gives you whiplash. You almost feel wrong about your dreams of shoving her face into the pavement.
You tuck a loose strand of hair behind your ear, âSo, nothing is going on between you guys?â
Scarlett grimaces as if you deeply offended her, âOf course not! Donât get me wrong, heâs cute, but not my type. His sister is cute, though.â
Woah.
âSomi? Jeon Somi? Youâre into her?â You ask, completely stunned.
âHell, yes. Hey, do you think you could set us up? Jungkook would never.â
âYou do know that Somi canât stand you, right?â
Scarlett excitedly nods, âI know, itâs kind of a turn-on.â
You hold your hands out to stop her from elaborating any further. Scarlett has surprised you in more ways than one in less than five minutes. Youâre sure any new information wouldâve made your head explode.
âIâllâŠtry my best.â You promise; not quite sure how Somi would feel about the idea of Scarlett liking her.
âFor what?â A voice interrupts, causing you and Scarlett to direct your attention to the treehouseâs entrance. And there he is, in all his gothic glory.Â
âGirl talk, none of your business,â Scarlett responds, making room for Jungkook to crawl in.Â
âFine. You keep your secrets; Iâll keep mine.â Jungkook groans, sitting between the two of you.
âWill do. Iâm outta here. Got a hot date with a box of hair dye. See you suckers later.â Scarlett waves goodbye as she exits the treehouse, reminding you of your promise before disappearing down the steps.
Jungkook clears his throat, sweeping his hair away from his eyes. "Soâ"
"I'm sorry," you cut him off, "I should've reached out and talked to you, but I was just too embarrassed and didn't know how to approach you about it. I really like you, and I wasn't using you to lose my virginity. I mean, you're the only person I've ever been interested in. So, again, I'm sorry."
He sighs, "I understand why you were embarrassed, but I promise it had nothing to do with you."
"Then what was it?"
Jungkook anxiously scratches the back of his head before he responds. "It's just thatâŠsometimesâŠit takes me a little bit longer to, uhâŠto finish."
Oh.
"Is it because of yourâŠsize?" You can't help but wonder.
Jungkook snorts, "What, you think I'm big?"
"I'm out of here." You joke, faking as if you're about to leave.
"Wait, wait, wait." He stops you, "I was only kidding. I never really thought size played a factor in it, but every guy is different. But, still, that doesn't mean I didn't enjoy us having sex. I mean, you had already finished, and I didn't want to tire you out just for my sake."
Knowing he had a perfectly reasonable explanation makes you feel even worse about spending all that time avoiding him. You want to tell him you wouldn't mind him tiring you out, that the idea excites you, but you refrain.
A beat of silence passes, and you ask, "But, I'm sure if there's something that you're really into, then it wouldn't take as long for you to finish. Right?"
Jungkook nods, "I guess."
"Then, what is it? What are you into?"
He coughs, tips of his ears turning a light shade of pink. "UmâŠI guess I'm intoâŠroughness?"
Ah.Â
"That's not a big deal. A lot of people are probably into that."
"I mean, it's fine either way, but I mostly prefer when girls are kinda rough with me. Fuck, this is embarrassing."
"It's not!" You reassure him, placing a gentle hand on his knee, "It's nothing to be embarrassed about. I appreciate you trusting me enough to tell me."
Jungkook stares at your hand on his knee before placing his own on top. You twist yours upwards and interlock your fingers, not missing the smile that forms on his face. His bangs have swept into his eyes again, and you use your free hand to move them out of the way. "It was my first time, too, by the way."
You snort, "You don't need to say that just to make me feel better."
"I'm serious," he continues, "I mean, I've gotten pretty handsy in the past, but nothing like what we did."
You shake your head, "I don't buy it. You seemed so experienced like you knew what you were doing."
Jungkook shrugs, "I mean, I'm not completely innocent. I may occasionally watch certain videos and read certain stories from time to time."
Porn and smut. Beautiful combination.
He shakes his head, "You still don't believe me; how come?"
You sigh, memories of the night before he left for college flashing in your mind. How you ran home in tears, how he only responded to Scar's comment on Somi's Facebook post. It almost hurts to think about. "The night before you left for school, there was an opened condom wrapper on your floor. I just figuredâŠyou know."
Jungkook nods at the memory. "I wasn't gonna go to the dorms the next day. I was planning on running away, that's why I gave you that bandana. After my parents helped bring my stuff to the dorms, I was gonna put everything in my car then take off."
You're having a hard time processing this information. Why would Jungkook plan on running away? What does this story have to do with the empty condom?
He continues, clutching your hand even tighter. "I only told a few people I was leaving, and there was this one girl who came over to say goodbye. She'd been really into me for a while and was heartbroken that I was leaving. We were about to hook up, hence the condom wrapper, but I couldn't do it."
"Why?" You question.
"Didn't feel right. I wasn't into her the same way she was into me. Just couldn't do it." He explains, eyes staring deep into yours. You believe him; you know he's being truthful.
"What made you decide to stay?" You ask.
"For Somi," he answers, "I couldn't just leave her like that. And for you, too."
Though you've felt it for many years, telling Jungkook you love him is too soon. But you want to, so very badly.
"I'm glad you decided to stay." Your voice is barely a whisper now as you try to stop yourself from tearing up.
He nods, "Me too."
You sit in comfortable silence for a minute, clutching each other's hands. You wish you could stay like this forever.Â
"I just realized you never told me if there's anything you're into." He points out.
You shrug, "Just you." And it's true: Jungkook is the only person you've ever been interested in. Everything he says and does is genuinely attractive to you.
He drops your hand gently, using it to tilt your head towards him, and he kisses you.Â
You're quick to cradle the back of his head as his hands snake around your waist, deepening the kiss. You move to straddle his lap, slowly pushing him onto his back. He grunts in surprise, breaking away from the kiss. "Youâ"
"Stop talking." You demand before your lips intertwine with his once again. With one hand on his chest, you reach to grab a fistful of his hair and tug lightly, earning a satisfied moan from him. You're not used to being rough with guys, but you're sure Jungkook enjoys it with the way his erection is already pressing up against your thigh.
Reluctantly, you pull away from him and sit up, staring at him sprawled underneath you in complete awe. "Alright, I'll message you my number so we can text. See you later."
"No! No, no, no. Please don't go." He pleads, holding you in place when you go to stand, "Just stay a little longer, please."
You smile down at him, fighting the urge to stay in the treehouse. "I can't. Imogen is waiting out front. We'll see each other soon, okay?" You promise, planting a kiss on his forehead.
Jungkook nods, fingers drumming against the floor as he watches you crawl out of the treehouse. "Don't be too surprised if I seem extra excited to see you next time." He calls after you.
"Trust me, I won't."
Jungkook is the first boy to ever sneak in through your bedroom window.
He carelessly tosses his backpack in first, cringing when it lands on your carpeted floor with a loud thud. Though youâve assured him your parents are heavy sleepers, heâs still worried youâll get in trouble if he makes too much noise and accidentally reveals himself. âSorry,â he apologizes, wrist gripping your forearm as you help pull him in.
âItâs fine,â you whisper back, âtheyâre not gonna wake up.â
âStill,â he grunts, using his upper body strength to pull him further into your room. âDonât want you getting in trouble.â
Itâs a day after the treehouse incident; as promised, you sent Jungkook your number and spent all day texting back and forth. Despite not being big on texting, you admire how Jungkook likes to keep you updated on what heâs doing and how he checks up on you to ensure youâre okay.Â
âWeâll be fine, but just in case, I did make room for you in my closet in case you have to hide.â You inform him.
Jungkook stifles a laugh, âGood to know.â He settles himself on the edge of your bed, moving over once he realizes heâd sat on a pile of clothing. âOh, were you about to shower?â
âI was,â you answer, moving the clothing over to your nightstand, âbut Iâll wait until after you leave.â
He has to stop himself from making a joke about joining you in the shower. He nods, leaning down to drag his backpack towards him, âGuess what I got today.â
âWhat?â You question, legs folded underneath you as you sit beside him.
Jungkook slowly unzips his backpack, careful not to make too much noise before rummaging through it and clutching something in his hand. He momentarily turns his back towards you, clips something to his shirt, then turns back around.
Thereâs a name tag on his chest now with his name scribbled in black ink and a little star next to it. âA job?â
He nods, âAt that music store, Spin City. Need to start saving up before classes start. Plus, I wanna take you out somewhere nice before summerâs over.â
You gulp, âLike, a date?â
âYeah. I mean, unless⊠I donât know. I just kinda figuredâŠâ He trails off, suddenly worried he may be scaring you off.
You grab ahold of his hand, âI know, and trust me, youâre perfect, and I want us to be together. But, the night we saw you at that party, I did ask Somi if she would be upset if I was into you. Surprisingly, she said she wouldnât mind as long as I talked to her before making a move on you. And, wellâŠâ
âWe made a move on each other without telling her,â Jungkook finishes for you.
You nod, âExactly.â
He sighs, âSo, Iâm guessing that means you wanna wait before we make things official.â
âYeah. No matter what, I still want to be with you. But itâd be best for all of us to get her on board with this first. Show her how much we truly care for each other, and make sure sheâs okay with it. So she knows my relationship with you wonât affect our friendship, and vice versa.â You explain. Jungkookâs eyes never stray from yours, listening intently and nodding at everything you say.
âThatâs fair,â he agrees, âItâs a good idea. Do you want me to talk to her? Or for us to talk to her together?â
You shake your head, âSheâll definitely freak out on you; itâs best if I do it alone first, then you talk to her afterward.â
Jungkook leans back against your bed, resting his head on your pillow. Itâs funny how different your aesthetics are; he looks perfectly out of place, sprawled on your baby pink pillow surrounded by teddy bears. âWhen?â
âI dunno,â you respond, lowering yourself until your head rests comfortably on his bicep. âDoesnât have to be right away. As long as itâs before we move into the dorms.â
âWe shouldnât wait too long, though. Itâll only make things worse.â Jungkook mumbles, pulling you closer to him.
âI know. Iâll have a talk with her soon, I promise.â
You interlock pinkies to solidify your promise and ease his nerves. You hadnât realized how anxiety-inducing this was for Jungkook as well. The idea of Somi not approving of your relationship had him genuinely worried.Â
âBut, you should know that no matter whatââ he starts.
You cut him off, âI know.â
The hands that once purposely dumped slime in your hair are now tugging your panties down your legs.
âCan we try something?â Jungkook asks with a mumble against your lips, your soft blue underwear now clutched in the palm of his hand.
âLike what? I actually make you come for once?â You joke, earning a laugh from Jungkook.
âDonât worry about me.â He presses another kiss against your lips, âYou trust me?â
âOf course.â You respond, sitting up in Jungkookâs bed as he moves backward, never breaking eye contact with you. He pushes your skirt up slightly but pats your hand away when you go to remove it altogether.
âLeave it on.â He commands, bringing himself at face level with your cunt.
Youâve never felt this shy in your life, grateful your bunched-up skirt created the tiniest barrier between having Jungkook see you all flustered. Never had you been this intimate with a guy, especially not a guy you technically werenât even dating.
His thumb is circling your clit before you have the time to protest, to tell him he doesnât have to do this just for your sake, but the feeling of his fingers pressed against you has you at a loss for words.Â
âThis okay?â He asks.
âYeah.â You respond, tilting your head upwards to stare at the ceiling.
Before you know it, his middle and index fingers are pressed against your opening, eliciting a gasp from your lips. At your reaction, Jungkook slips his finger into your entrance, thumb still playing with your clit. He insists on being teasingly slow today, wanting to draw out every moment and observe your reaction. Â
He pumps his fingers in and out of you in a slow, consistent motion, an amused smirk on his lips when he hears your breathing become ragged. Abruptly, he slips his fingers out of you, moving your thighs to rest them atop his shoulders.Â
âWait, you donât have toâoh fuck.â Youâre cut off by Jungkook pushing himself forward, placing a sudden kiss on your clit that has your hips jolting in the air. His hand grabs your waist and licks at your slit, keeping you in place as he gently returns your body to his mattress.Â
His growing erection is the last of his worries, all too focused on dragging his tongue across your cunt. He flattens his tongue, pulling the wetness upward until heâs circling your clit again. In search of something to grab onto, your hands grip the bed sheets until Jungkook reaches forward, moving your hand over to grip his hair.
His eyes are closed when you look down at him, and you swear you can hear him moan as he eats you out. You try your best to keep the noise down out of fear someone will hear, but you canât help but yell out when heâs back to fingering you, all while circling your clit with his tongue.Â
Your grip on his hair tightens, pushing his face further into your pussy, and he lets out a satisfied groan. Itâs embarrassing how quickly your orgasm approaches; everything with Jungkook is so intense. He knows this, eyes fluttering open to watch your expressions. Black eyeshadow is smeared across his eyelids as his eyes focus on your own, hands gripping your thighs as he tongue circles your clit.
His fingers are relentlessly pumping into your cunt now, contrasting against how teasingly slow his tongue is moving. He pulls his mouth away, lips glistening with your arousal, and asks, âYou close?â
You donât respond directly, but the grip you have on his hair gives him all the answers he needs before heâs diving back in. It doesnât take much for you to come after that, a final kiss pressed on your clit, sending you over the edge and coating Jungkookâs fingers.
Jungkook doesnât stop there, still continuing to lick and suck your clit until youâre begging him to stop from the overstimulation.
âSorry.â He apologizes, planting a kiss on your inner thigh, âWas that good?â
âThat was literally the best thing thatâs ever happened to me.â You respond. Jungkook lets out a laugh as he crawls up next to you. âI should be upset with you, though.â
âWhat?â He questions, peppering your face with kisses, âWhyâs that?â
âI came over to talk to your sister about us, and you distracted me.â
âHowâd I do that?â
âBecause! You came downstairs in your eyeshadow. Then you were all like, âOh, hey. I cleaned my room; wanna check it out?ââ You mimic a deep voice that sounds nothing like his.Â
âI apologize for putting on eyeshadow, bringing you to my room, and eating you out. Can you find it in your heart to forgive me?â
âI guess.â
You both laugh at this as you move to pull your skirt down. âHey, howâd you realize you like it when girls are rough with you?â
Jungkook shakes his head as the memory returns to him, a shy smile on his face as he glances over at you. âA couple years ago, I was picking on Somi for something. I donât even remember why, but it got to the point where my parents were telling me to stop, and I wouldnât. Then, you just started yelling at me out of nowhere, and I donât know why, but it was the hottest thing ever. I was in awe. I really thought you were gonna slap me. Since then, itâs just been a turn-on of mine.â
âWow. Thatâs actually kind of pathetic.â You tease.
He groans, âPlease donât say that. Youâre gonna make me hard again.â
Laughter is shared between you once again before you lean your head down to rest on his chest, the sound of his steady heartbeat making you feel calm. A comfortable minute of silence passes before you have to address the unfortunate inevitable, âSomi should be here soon, right?â
âYeah,â Jungkook mumbles, âwithin the next ten minutes.â
You sigh, âNext time I come over, Iâll have to tell her about us.â
The next time you stop by the Jeon household, Jungkook has you bent over in the backseat of his car.
His finger digs into your waist as his cock is plunging into you at full force, emptying all the thoughts from your brain. You still havenât fully adjusted to his size, but you donât care; the pain of being split open makes you come faster. It feels better.
Jungkook insisted on taking things slow, telling you that youâd need to adjust to his size, but the moment you sunk your dripping cunt onto him, he was under your spell.Â
Your body lunges forward with every rough stroke Jungkook gives you, hands buried in your hair as he pulls you up against his chest. His hand moves from your hair down to your neck, tilting your head back while applying the slightest bit of pressure against your throat. Your eyes close out of instinct as tears form in the corner of your eyes before trickling down your cheeks. He kisses them away one by one before settling his lips on your neck. You make a mental note to check yourself for hickeys afterward.
Youâre coming around him before you realize it, body spasming as you grip the driverâs seat headrest. Jungkook shows no signs of stopping or slowing down; in fact, heâs sped up even faster since fucking you through your orgasm. He lets go of your neck to push down on your back, left hand gripping your waist while the right intertwines your fingers with his.Â
A few strokes later, heâs finally coming and jokes about showing you the used condom as confirmation.
You shake your head, gesturing for him to pass you the shorts heâd tossed in the front seat. âI canât believe I let you trick me again.â
âWhat?!â He exclaims in utter shock, reaching in the front seat to grab your discarded clothing, âHow exactly did I trick you?â
âI came over to talk to Somi, but then you were all like, âHey, come look at my car; I just got it washed.ââ You playfully roll your eyes, searching around the backseat for your underwear.
âCan I keep these?â He asks suddenly, the most nonchalant expression on his face as your panties dangle from his middle finger.
You scoff, reaching to snatch them from him, confused when he retracts his hand. âI think I will keep them until you talk to Somi. Since it was you who wanted to talk to her first.â
âThen, I guess Iâll get them back tomorrow because Iâm definitely talking to her today.â
Except you donât.
You spent the entire summer sneaking around with Jungkook and procrastinating about having that talk with Somi. It was anxiety-inducing, to say the least, and you had no idea how sheâd react. You tell yourself she wonât be upset as long as you assure her your friendship wonât be affected by you dating her brother.Â
Youâre scheduled to move into the dorms within a few weeks, so itâs best to sort things out now before you all live under the same roof, unable to avoid one another. Jungkook doesnât seem nervous at all. In fact, heâd given you a pep-talk the day before you showed up at their home.
âShe canât stay mad forever.â He pointed out, eyes sealed shut as you do his eyeliner.
âI know,â you mumbled, adjusting yourself on his lap, âbut that girl can hold a grudge.â
âRight, but this is you weâre talking about. You mean a lot to her, to both of us, actually.â
His words play in your mind as you enter the Jeon household, following Somi into the kitchen. âBaking something?â You ask, a sweet, decadent scent hitting your nose.
âBrownies for some stupid bake sale my parents are having. Help me clean up?â She asks, pouting her lips at you.
âSure.â You agree, under the assumption that there wouldnât be much to even clean up.Â
Boy, you were wrong. Itâs like Somi used every dish in the house to make one sheet of brownies. Thereâs no backing out now; you already agreed to help, and itâd be best to stay on her good side for now.
She gets to work rinsing each dish before handing them to you to load the dishwasher, moving quickly to get everything done faster.
âWhat a beautiful friendship.â A familiar voice comments; you fight back a smile as Somi groans at her brother.
âYou wouldnât know; you donât have any friends,â Somi responds, laughing at her words.
âNeither will you, soon,â Jungkook whispers back, groaning when you swat him in the chest. âAny brownie batter left?â
âNone for you. Shouldnât you be at work?â Somi asks, handing you another dish.
Somi takes a break from rinsing off the dishes to bicker with Jungkook for a minute. You tune out from the conversation, dipping your fingers into the leftover batter bowl and gathering the chocolate on your fingers.
âIâm leaving, Iâm leaving,â Jungkook says. When Somi finally directs her attention elsewhere, Jungkook takes the opportunity to grab your wrist, bringing your fingers up to his lips before sucking the chocolate off them.Â
Your eyes practically bulged out of your head, nervously glancing behind you to ensure Somi hadnât seen anything. You swat at Jungkookâs chest for the second time, and he laughs as if youâre being overly dramatic. Itâs odd how surprisingly calm he is about everything. His demeanor would have worried you if you didnât trust him so much.Â
Jungkook wipes the renaming bit of chocolate around his lips before mouthing âGood luck.â You give him a nervous smile, watching as he slips past Somi and leaves out the front door. You get back to work, making small talk with Somi as you help her load the dishwasher.
Itâs now or never.
âSo,â you start, âweâre gonna be living together soon.â
Somi smiles, âFinally! God, I canât wait to have some freedom. My stupid curfew is a major cock-block. Right when things are finally getting good on a date, I have to go back home. So fucking frustrating. Thereâs literally cobwebs in my vagina.â
You snort, loading the final dish into the washer. âWell, you wonât have that problem anymore.â
âI know. And maybe youâll even find someone worthy even to date you.â Somi jokes, hopping on the kitchen counter.
âUh, what if I already have found someoneâŠworthy enough?â You question, pressing a few buttons to get the dishwasher going.
âAs if.â
âSomi, Iâm serious.â
She sighs, still not buying your confession. âAlright then, who is it?â
â...Your brother.â
A beat of silence passes, and then Somi doubles over in laughter, nearly slipping off the counter several times in seconds. It takes her a minute to catch her breath, clutching her collar for support as she regulates her breathing; even tears are forming in her eyes. âHoly fuck, can you imagine? You and my brother? Jesus Christ.â
âLook, there really isnât an easy way to say this, but we really do like each other. Weâve beenâŠtogether this whole summer. Well, not officially; I didnât want to put a label on anything without talking to you about it first.â You finally confess. The weight on your shoulders doesnât immediately drop as you expected; itâs like the load has gotten heavier.
Somi has a blank expression as she stares at you, eyes darting around the kitchen as she processes the information. âYouâre serious?â
You nod.
She shakes her head, âWhat kind of friend are you?â
Fuck.
âSomi, please, let meââ
She cuts you off, hopping off the counter and inching towards you. âSo, what? All this time, you were using me to get close to Jungkook? Out of every fucking guy on the planet?!â
âNo! Of course not! Somi, I never even imagined myself in a relationship with him until this summer, I swear!â Your voice trembles as Somi approaches you. The two of you have never been in a physical fight before, but the expression on her face tells you thereâs a first time for everything.
âOh, really? You expect me to believe that, huh? So itâs just a coincidence that you guys suddenly got together right before weâre all gonna be living in the same building?â
âI know it doesnât sound great, butââ
âI think you should go.â Somi cuts you off calmly, her sudden change in demeanor shocking you. A moment ago, she looked angry enough to hit you, but now, she seems a few seconds away from breaking down in tears.Â
You nod understandably, telling Somi to take all the time she needs and to call you when sheâs ready to talk.Â
She doesnât say a word as you exit her house, and you wonder if youâve just lost the best friend youâve ever had.Â
âIâve never seen her this angry, Jungkook. I thought she was gonna hit me or something.â You groan, ear pressed up against your phone as you rant to Jungkook.
Itâd been a few hours since you left Somiâs house; Jungkook had promised to call you during his break to hear how the conversation went. Youâre still shaking as the memories flood you, how your best friend in the world accused you of using her. What a fucking joke.Â
âSheâll get over it, trust me. Yâknow, before I called you, she spent five minutes yelling at me over the phone. Five fucking minutes, and I just took it. Sheâll be fine.â He says, following up with a loud slurping noise that suggests Jungkook has chosen to have ramen for lunch.
Itâs astonishing how calm heâs managed to stay this entire time.
You flip over on the couch, head resting on the armrest as you stare at the ceiling. âI just donât wanna lose her. Sheâs a fireball, for sure, but sheâs my fireball. I donât know what Iâd do without her.â
âI just told you youâre not gonna be without her, okay?â
â...Okay.â
Thereâs a knock at your front door, most likely from the pizza delivery Jungkook had sent to your house.
âI gotta go. The food is here. Are you still stopping by after your shift?â
âOf course. You gonna be alright?â
âYeah,â you stand, making your way to the front door. âIâll save you some pizza.â
He chuckles at that, âYou better. Iâll see you later, okay? I love you.â
He what?
âYou what?â You pause, hand on the doorknob.
âI love you, and Iâll see you later.â He hangs up.
You donât have time to process his words; the knocking at your front door happens again.
Twisting the knob, youâre met with Somi staring back at you. âSomi? Whatâre youââ
âI donât care if you date Jungkook.â She claims, storming through your front door, âIf you guys want to be together, then Iâm not standing in the way. But I will not be your friend if you date him, so itâs either him or me.â
You follow Somi into your living room, your pulse quickening upon hearing her ultimatum. âSomi, thatâs notââ
âBefore you chooseâŠas a girl, and as your friend, I have to be completely honest with you.â She sighs, fingers nervously raking through her hair as she sits on your couch. âI called Jungkook after you left, and he talked to me about you guys.â
You nod, taking a seat next to her. âOkay, andâŠ?â
She sighs again, taking your hand in her own. âEverything heâs ever told you was a lie.â

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch âą No registration required âą HD streaming
yoongi GET UP
thanks for this jade, this is kinda legendary
Ê FINISH INSIDE HER ?! É
᥎êȘ« sum. what the hell is a full nelson? no worries, luckily underground boxer toji shows you a hands-on demonstration. although, you want choso to try it with you too. not only are you a slut visual learner, but you also think you can take them both - not in a fight though.
wc. 5.8k
warnings. fem! reader, boxer! au, boxers toji & choso, 3sum, choso walks in on you and toji, unprotected, full nelson, manhandling, brief Ćral (f + m), quickie, size diff, finger sucking, praise, dirty talk, choking, they fight over you, whiny choso, squırting, impact play, slight nıpple play, premature ejac, spıt.
an. kind of based on this ask!
âupsie daisey, uh huh. biiiiig fuckinâ stretch,â your mouth drops open once your thighs gets sprawled apart. your back slumps back against the fighter â toji, youâve been training with him for a while. not only were you training with him but youâve also been a bit of a fan. you mentioned to him on how you wanted to strengthen your âflexibilityâ a bit more and of course, he had just the right thing to help you. out of curiosity, you asked him about a certain position you watched him perform on his rival, choso kamo. full nelson, it was considered illegal in some rings if not all. toji would always perform a specific choking move where heâd pin choso down with ease, burly buff arms putting him in a head lock - preventing him from moving a single inch. the entire crowd always goes wild at it every single timeâso you wanted to try it out for yourself. âeasy, easy. donât tap out on me jusâ yet, okay? yâer a big girl.â
bobbling your head to give him a nod, an airy breeze shoves you back into his chest. the stretchy fabric of his boxing shorts tickle against your skin upon impact. âo- okay,â you breathe, gasping once he hooks two big arms underneath the undersides of your thighs. heâs got such a good taut grip that seconds later, you felt yourself throb a bit at the feverish, hot friction. âyouâre not really gonna, heh, choke me out right?â
ânot unless yâer into that, princess,â he jibes, a throaty husk of a chuckle leaving out of him. and as youâre spread all out, limbs extendedâyeah,
you were probably fucked.
after what seems like hours of meaningless stretches and exercises to prepare your limbs, tojiâs finally got you in the position â you were sprawled right in his lap, being in a safe firm chokehold.
his voice was roughly gruff, and as he spreads your legs just a bit further, you feel the cottony bandage that wraps around his arm ghost up against your thigh. his touch was gentle and you intake a sharp breath, further continuing to lean into his touch - his grasp. âmhm, seems like yâer a bit more flexible than i thought. this comfy?â
âno,â you let off a sheepish snort, starting to feel a brief pang on your thighs from the position. to be fair â not only was full nelson uncomfortable but it was dangerous. just one wrong move and snap. but toji was a professional, heâd make sure youâd keep all your pretty little limbs in tact. probably. clearing your throat, your eyes scan around a plethora of trophies and plaques heâs won throughout his career. âbut um, have you ever tried this position with no clothes on?â
toji grows quiet, allowing you to lie back on his chest. black curly strands of chest hair fondle against your skin before he murmurs gruffly into your ear. âmaybe.â
the growing bulge that hid underneath his boxers had you almost feral. you felt its presenceâhow it was just there, poking right against your shorts.
you prepare for yet another sharp drawn out breath, taking in his loud axe cologne that wafts through the entire studio. âcan we try nude?â
and that was probably dumb to ask.
it was very dumb to ask.
your lewd filthy thoughts loved to make themselves known out of your lips at the worst times. your heart raced the moment you blurted that out, feeling the tips of your ears burn a scorching temperature. heâd say no, you were almost sure of it. you were just a dumb fan who managed to be a favorite, surely he wouldnâtâ
âwhy the hell not,â he snickers, sliding his hands toward the smooth curvature of your hips. âiâll go easy on ya for today. letâs get rid of these,â he pulls on the string of your panties, already discarding your shorts with such quickness. âiâll try not âta break you too bad.â
but that was a lieâ
not only did he break you but he stretched you out in all the ways possible.
you had the most dumbest expression, tongue lolled out, legs spread, gushing all over the velvet red boxing mat - time and time again.
pink luminescent lighting shine back against the centers of your irises as you stare up at the ceilingâs lights. youâve never felt so weak. spit slick lips of yours were all swollen and numb from being chewed on constantly like candy. within minutes, your knees were already surrendering, bucking at his very mercy.
âfuck, tooooji.â youâd drag out his name in cute elongated syllables.
the infamous elastic stretch of his cock has you writhe and spasm all over his lap. ludicrously, your voice bounces across the cheap walls of the building. nevertheless, you canât lie to yourself, youâve rubbed a few out at the thought of having this moment with your favorite boxer.
unprofessional, maybe. but he didnât care and neither did you. besides, he was helping you with your flexibility after all. even if it was a bit more intimate than most regular methods.
your heart races, thumping out quick hurried beats as heâs shoving his cock in and out of you. youâre in such a submissive position that you were just a bobble head, a doll. he treated you like one â using your body, bouncing you up and down and manhandling you all over the mat.
he gruffly cackles behind the plushy shell of your ear, watching right before his eyes as youâre jouncing on his dick. your skin was so warm, so hot, the recoil stings for a few seconds before your ass ricochets off his sharp pelvis.
the smacks and paps only grew louder, and so did your sweet melodic moans and whimpers.
a creamy pearl of a ring coats around his base and he grunts, still having a beefy arm around your neck. his muscles flex and you fight the urge to bite his bicep. âeasy, good girl. lean right into me. yâer a natural.â
his words went straight to your cunt. toji was a dirty talker, never a sweet talker.
he knew how to get you wet, whether it was with his slick mouth, his tongue, or even his cock. his voice was always so low, timbre and all. the husk that it carried never failed to make you soaked. embarrassing,
oh, it definitely was embarrassing.
heâs got a free hand gripping onto your thigh, kissing your ass with his palm - rough rude spanks.
the cute flinches of your rear bouncing back against his lap makes him slide a tongue over his lips, including sliding over that notorious scar that slides down the right side of his mouth. âfuck, so fuckinâ sloppy. got the mat all soaked. should make ya lick it up, huh.â
you couldnât even reply . . you tried, but babbles of inaudible squeaks came out instead.
it just felt too good, he felt too good.
youâre panting heavily, the repetitive pop song that blared through the boxing ringâs broken speakers gets stuck in your head. you hear the moist wails of your pussy squelching time and time again, entirely soaking yourself with your own beloved filth. a free hand of tojiâs creeps its way in front of you. hand so big that he could easily cover it over your entire face if he could.
with glossy half-lidded eyes, you stare at his palm, feeling your mouth water.
thick long fingers, he knew what he was doing.
tojiâs just casually waving his hand around in your face in a slow mesmerizing motion as you bounced on his cock. they were so lengthy and thick, his arms had prodding veins for days. from his wrist to the edge of his arm, you saw the veins poking out. he was so built that you couldnât help but stare, couldnât help but drool. âwhat a sloppy little girl. i could really snap you in half, heh,â he huffs, clenched abs pressing against your back. itâs hard, rock hard . . they feel like bricks.
you knew underground boxers like toji had to keep up a strict workout routine but damn.
âbut youâd like that, huh,â he murmurs, bringing another smack to your slick wet folds. you moan at the stretch of your limbs, craving for more of his rude spanks against your swollen cunt. you throbbed from not only his words but his touch too, and the thought of him literally breaking you had you a bit more soaked than you thought it would.
this was a workout of its own - rutting your weight up and down against him. heâs got a secure hold on your body, holding your thighs up in place.
you were stupid, not even acknowledging that youâd already grab ahold of his wrist, stuffing his fingers into your mouth. you moan the second the dry bandaged digits delve past your lips and makings way down your throat. as your ass steadily rocks against him in sloppy rhythm, you feel the very tips of his fingers prod against your puny uvula. you almost gag at the unexpected feelingâa cobwebby trail of saliva that was translucent pours down the side of your parted lips.
âno manners, tch,â he scoffs and his ripped abs continue to brush up against your back. âsloppy baby. got some nerve showinâ up to train being this fuckinâ nasty ân soaked.â
the hot skin against skin contact rubbing off against each other had your panties in a bunch, despite them already being technically pulled to the side and abandoned.
you were already still sensitive, swollen achy cunt sobbing out its own pleas of pleasure.
haphazardly, your knees buckle and he snatches his fingers out of your mouth. he does this solely to get a taste himself, swirling his pink pointed tongue against his slippery digits all thanks to you. âstartinâ âta think you came here for more than to just get an autograph ân work out with me, pretty girl.â
and as the plump crown of his cock molds you a tiny brief bulge from just his size alone â it repeatedly thrashes up against your sweetest spot. you shudder, about to collapse backward before you hear the jingling bells of the front door sound off.
âh- hey, toji man. did i leave my . . gloves . . ?â
choso, tojiâs rival and regular training partner stares at the erotic scene and his face twists.
âoh,â and heâs flustered right away.
you stop bouncing and your eyes widen as big as saucersâyet, you werenât even embarrassed. you were in awe, you knew all about choso kamo.
the choso kamo, anyone would be crazy not too. he was the most recent up and coming boxer, and after beating toji with a brutal close score of 58-57.
as youâre reclined back against tojiâyou finally get a good look at the other dark haired boxer.
he was slim yet also well built, choso was known for fighting opponents with his iconic ponytails but as of currently - he started to wear his hair down. sometimes heâd pin it up, a bit of a wolf cut that flew down his broad shoulders.
as his bashful gaze met yours, he grew nervous. very nervous.
black sable hued shorts cling onto his hips whilst he was shirtless, a few past battle scars painting the entire canvas of his perfectly chiseled body. âam i . . interrupting something?â
ânah. câmere, âcho,â a husky voice calls out and he pauses in his tracks. the air suddenly clouded its way with imaginary thick smoke of lust and tension. itâs so thick you could cut it with a knife.
he swallowsâdragging his bare feet across the crimson red mat toward you both, ducking underneath the stretchy multicolored bars before gawking at you. he was far pretty up close once he entered the practice ring, he runs a hand behind his neck before averting his eyes away from your nude body out of respect.
âheâs always been kinda shy,â toji purrs to you, still buried deep into your cunt. you shiver, every movement he makes makesâeven just sitting up makes you let off a soft noise. you chew the inside of your cheek, feeling a stickiness stick between your thighs. dark green eyes flicker at choso and he hums, tilting his head. âchoso, you know how to do full nelson too, yeah?â
ây- yeah, of course i do why?â
âyouâre avoiding eye contact again.â
choso gulps - burying his hands into the burrows of his shorts pockets. a sheet of sweat marinates across his forehead before he glances at toji, rephrasing. âeh, yeah i know how to do full nelson. why?â
âbecause,â toji smacks his lips, a hand prying its way between the valley of your legs. you moan, still feeling full from tepid hot dumps of his cum practically oozing out of your puffy slit. âweâve got a new opponent ân she wants to experience what itâs really like on the ring.â
âtoji, we do full nelson all the time,â choso timidly runs a bundle of fingers through his buzzed undercut, a timid smile curling against his lips. âwe never usually do it um . . naked though.â
the boxer underneath you deadpans. he could be so dense, choso stands still before a small gasp wrenches out of his pink glossed lips.
âoh.. oh,â and his face turns into a flustered tint.
youâve watched a bit of his interviews and it seemed not only was he shy with the press but he was also very shy in person. it was cute, regardless.
as youâre busy being trapped up in your own thoughts, choso canât help but peek down toward your legs. you were all exposed and being stretched out by his rival. he sucks his teeth in longing, briefly staring away before feeling himself grow a bit . . aroused. âi feel disrespectful for looking, âm sorry.â
âno, itâs okay,â you murmur in coy reassurance, and a hand tugs onto his wrist. chosoâs breath hitches at your touch, and you felt his dark eyes flicker back toward you. thereâs this look in chosoâs eyes, itâs mainly lust-driven. his pupils were blown and his heart raced, you looked so pretty. itâs not like he didnât exactly not know you. heâd see you every so often when you were âtrainingâ with toji. not only that but heâd spot you attending almost every boxing match. always in the front row with a vip lanyard. secretly, you were more of a choso fan but toji didnât have to know that. âdo you wanna touch me too?â
âyes,â he blurts out almost right away and his face flushes a deeper shade. a rumble from toji shakes his shoulders - heâs chuckling, and you feel a big arm wrap around your torso. you bite down on your lip, still feeling yourself sit in a creamy puddle of filth, warm cum still plugged into you. choso starts to pant, watching you slither a hand between your thighs, spreading your soppy pussy lips. âi mean.. oh, thatâs..â and heâs barely able to think straight, watching as you toy with yourself whilst still being full of tojiâs thickset cock. his head starts to spin before he inches closer, kneeling down after your cute hand gestures to come here. âa- are you sure you want me toââ
âitâs okay, go ahead.â you hum, guiding his wrist.
âchoso, sheâs not gonna bite ya,â toji snickers, bringing your legs back down. as of now â you were currently straddling him with your back facing his chest. choso rubs his neck once more, growing sheepish yet again. itâs adorable, but again, heâs seen you at his matches and face offs. choso being choso though was far too shy to say anything or thank you for your support. but now, maybe he could thank you in another way. toji crosses his arms, cocking his head as he glances at the scene. âatta boy.â
a scowl forms on the timid boxer as his fingers resume to brush up against your drooling cunt. âs- shut up, toji,â and you let off a moan at his gentle strokes. you continue to lie back against toji - staring at choso, ogles as two plump fingers of his partnerâs play up and down against your soddened entrance. chosoâs mouth starts to water the more he stares, admiring how full you wereâyou had a few remnants of tojiâs cum oozing from your slit and he swipes it up, bedaubing it against your pussy to make it sheeny again. âf- fuck, youâre so pretty.â
âyou can t- touch me more, choso,â you lightly pause his hand by grabbing his wrist. his eyes meet yours and he felt the tent in his boxers tighten. oh, he was already whipped from the sound of your voice. with half lidded smoky eyes, he huffs out a single breath before glancing at your lips. you climb off of toji and a brief pop exits your cunt - dragging choso closer. âare you hard, choso?â
âheâs definitely hard,â toji tchs, averting his jade green eyes toward his partnerâs shorts. it was hard to not notice the presentable bulge thatâs sticking right in front of his leather everlast brand shorts. âcute.â
âshut up man,â he repeats with a glowering scowl.
with a cute dramatic sigh, choso grumbles something under his breath - trying to pay more attention back toward you. he leans into your touch, closing the gap between your legs until heâs right between you. choso presses a chaste kiss against your collarbone before moaning into your tender skin. he couldnât help but suck against your shoulder for a few seconds, relishing in your candied flavor.
you were so sweet - bandaged hands roam everywhere on your displayed body before he exhales deeply, staring at you with almost heart shaped pupils. âyou . . wanna try full nelson with me too, princess?â
throwing your arms over him, you hum with a subtle nod. âyeah, âs okay. i can handle it.â
famous last words,
with choso . . he stretched you all the way out, probably even more than toji.
his cock was just as thick, maybe even more. his fat reddened tip swelters the inside of your sopping pussy so good until youâre whimpering his name on constant loop. itâs like a mantra, youâre so dumb that itâs like his five lettered name was the only thing your brain could comprehend to say.
heâs got you upright in the same exact position before, slinging two beefy arms underneath your thighs as your weight bounces and defies gravity.
âfuck, fuck,â he whines, the addictive squeeze your cunt had never failed to make itself known. he reached any and every area so deep. choso had a delicious curve to his cock that sent you straight butterflies. it expands through your walls, french kissing your insides until you whine. his base was repeatedly getting smacked from your ass, each ân every time you jerked up from his lap. ây- youâre so good. so warm, âm gonna pass out.â
âarenât you the boxer though?â you try to tease, but your cheeky voice falters the second his slitted tip kisses against that spot.
your vision was merely blurry, seeing nothing but a kaleidoscope of stars. in almost defeat, your head falls back against his chest and toji watches the entire time, buff arms crossed and an amused cunning expression. seeing you milk his rival was something he didnât know would turn him on so much.
choso doesnât reply to your little jest, still pumping such fat inches inside of your gripping walls. heâs already dumb, knocked out cold with a solid punch - not necessarily from an opponent, but your pussy. âhang onto me, âkay? this position requires lots of um . . s- stamina.â
as you nod, your entire body dangles and bobs from the movement â parching hot friction gluing against each jolting limb before you spasm.
âchosoooo,â and your thighs collapse, coming to its pleasurable demise. his thrusts were sloppy, the squelches of your own body was so lewd. you heard it through and through, glancing down to see yourself flutter and clench around his cock. âfuck, fuck âm gonna get close again.â
âwait,â a gruff voice murmurs and you glance up to see toji standing over you. he cups your chin, a thumb caressing your quivering bottom lip. âsuch a empty mouth. hm, open for me, pretty. think you could use some throat training too.â
as chosoâs still plummeting his cock into your swollen cunt - stretching you out dexterously, you part your lips open.
by your surprise, tojiâs lips meets yours and he pulls you into a deep kiss. itâs a bit of a rushing kiss, sloppy and strings of saliva tangling between each mouths. you moan, feeling the weight of your breasts bounce as youâre making haste on the other boxerâs lap. fuck, you were quite literally living the dream. you whimper, feeling his broad hands grab against your tits, using thumbs to push squeeze pressure against your perky nipples. he was always so handsy, allowing his hands to wander everywhere and yanking against the remaining pathetic pieces of fabric that covered your body.
you were still layered . . partially,
his rough scarred hands slide underneath your blouse as heâs continuing to make out with you, curling his parted tongue beside your own before it turns into obscene sucking. your own tongue occasionally scrapes against his scar that located directly near the right side of his mouth - it tickles a bitâhowever, you whimper once chosoâs dick created its own little kisses against your g-spot.
abruptly, toji who was just claiming your mouth a few seconds ago pulls away from the continued kiss to grip underneath your chin again. âah, say ah,â and he hums at your obedience, staring at your pretty pink tongue rolling out of your mouth flat. âgood, âm gonna train this throat a little bit for ya, sweets. that alright?â
âo- okay,â and youâre briefly cut off once he springs out his cock again, thwacking his pink pearly tip against your tongue. he lets off a gruff satisfied grunt, feeling himself harden up once you flick your tongue against his slit. youâre slow, making sure to savor his taste. he watches, smacking his lips and his left brow curls.
toji bites his lip, his abs curlings as he watches you try to suck him of fully â he smacks his cock all against your face softly, watching your needy pout before humming. âsuch a needy cock hungry slut,â and a thumb swipes against your lip, preparing to insert his hardened shaft down your throat. âaw, you want more, do ya?â
you nod before moaning, feeling choso kiss down your neck, yearning for your attention.
ây- youâre doing so good,â choso whines against your ear, clinging onto your jerking body. ângh, donât listen to toji. heâs just mean.â
toji rolls his eyes. heâd reply with a sassy remark but he was still feeling the after effects of sensitivity. his muscles were all tense and spasming from you just bouncing on him just a few minutes ago. youâre just grinding onto choso, feeling your hips ridiculously buckle and snap before he smears his cockhead against your lips like it was lipstick. his plump tip goes against your wet lips, only for him to smack it against your clean pink tongue. âmmph.â you lashes flutter, ogling as he buries a few fingers into your scalp for a good grip. toji grunts, briefly tossing his head back in rapture. his scent grows stronger as he gradually starts to sink his way into your mouth.
ât- toji, âm gonna cum. i canât last,â choso babbles, facial expressions scrunching up the more you quicken your tempo on his lap. toji glances at choso whoâs melting right underneath you â heâs got you in a secure hold, but itâs lazy.
one of his arms sling around your torso, another holding onto your thigh. âfuck,â he sucks against your neck, feeling the stretch increase. your walls were his own worst enemy, preparing to milk him for all of his worth. everything felt hot, his throat felt dry and heâs starting to shake right underneath you. âgonna cum, gonna c- cum.â
ânot yet, âcho,â he grunts, watching as you lean in, adjusting your throat to his heavy size. your tongue swirls around the peeling slit and he huffs, a single hand tightening its hold against the roots that stick onto your scalp. âmhm, look at me. donât worry about him, heâs just a crybaby,â and you can hear choso let off a scoff from behind you. tojiâs sensitive cock was still dribbling a bit with a concoction of your previous juices and he groans at the image of you lapping it right up. âcâmon, little deeper. i wanna feel that slutty roof.â
whilst youâre having your mouth and cunt filled entirelyâchosoâs whining pitches louder and louder. so loud that it reverbs all throughout the thin walls of the empty boxing arena. thankfully, there wasnât anyone here and it was usually closed on saturdays. he didnât like be edged, he hated it.
but it felt good,
so fucking good.
especially due to the fact that he was so close to you, hearing your sweet whimpers follow in sync with his.
your voice made his cock twitch and from the inside, you felt it all.
every frantic spasm - you felt it, not to mention the few lightning type veins that run down the upward curve of his cock, you felt that too.
you rocked against him until your knees were at its last. heâs still holding you up but even he was about to tap out. choso had stamina - but he was no match for his rival, toji.
with murky low eyesâtojiâs staring dead at you, bobbling your head and merely shoving you down just a little deeper.
you get sloppy, a puddle of drool trickling down the corners of your chin and down the valley of your chest before his tip hits against the roof of your mouth again.
itâs a rough rude hit and his cock gives the very back of your throat its own few jabs. a combo if you will â yet itâs more raunchy instead of sportsmanlike.
âeyes on me baby. yeah, yeah,â toji turns your head a bit, locking onto your sweet gaze. âget it wet, clean it up for me. make me just as much of a mess as you, girl.â
his words were so low - an almost growl. you were too focused on toji that you concisely forgot about the other boxer thatâs sat underneath you.
choso came and it was so suddenâhe couldnât hold it anymore.
his grip weakens and he slouched back against the ring, spurts of hot cum pouring into you deep. heâs trembling, feeling a wave crash down on him as heâs succumbing to his high. choso canât help but try to mimic toji, swatting the palm of his hand softly against your ass. even his spanks were respectful.
the worn out boxer pants, letting off an adorable finish. his vocals were quite loud despite having a deep bellow. âbaby oh, fuuuck,â he mewls out, dark brows coming together. choso was about to lose it even more at the feeling your swiveling hips throwing itself around in a circle just because. toji watches the entire thing, how you were teasing his partner whilst having your mouth all stuffed full. as heâs stood tall before you both, his abs clench and you get a face view of it all. perfectly incised along the edges, you saw a few marks and scars coat against his skin and itâs never been more attractive. choso on the other hand found his hands grabbing onto your tits, gently brushing a thumb against your sensitive nipples before nuzzling into your neck. he was definitely pussy drunk â you could hear it. âbabyyy,â a soft voice whines pussy drunkly against the lobe of your ear, and you depart your lips away from tojiâs cock. he groans, viewing you lie back before you start to twitch out a bit yourself.
not only was choso close but so were you. as your legs were all stuck up in the air in its ideal position, you dramatically gasp once you feel it.
thereâs a tugging pile of pressure that presses down on your tummy. your jaw dropsâdangles and everything as youâre being pushed further toward the edge. your arousal steadily builds up until it finally comes.
just seconds apart from choso, you pant - a brief pang of electric shock ascending down right through you. you were speechless for a moment.
thereâs nothing but a white noise blaring through each of your ears. it feels like an unpredictable wave, a powerful wave that ripples right through your entire body. it took you a long time to realize you were finishing - not only finishing but you were squirting.
âohmygodddd,â you whimper out, feeling your legs vigorously shake. you gush out right onto the mat. feeling yourself grow hot â youâre even hotter because of chosoâs body underneath you.
effortlessly, bodies stick against each other, snuggling in filthy warmth. as youâre leisurely coming to a halting stop of your rhythmic hips, chosoâs cock remained tuck inside of you and you catch your breath, head cutely flopping back against his bare chest.
âdid . . did you just squirt on me?â choso whimpers, a tremor in his voice.
his voice, it grew a bit raspier. although, you could still hear the softness lingering underneath it.
toji leans in toward you both, spreading your legs open just a bit more - he strums a calloused thumb down your opening, peering as youâre still fluttering out of arousal and was still sopping wet all the way from your needy clit.
âshe fuckinâ did,â he coos, and he leans down, getting right on his knees.
you watch with low hooded eyes, still feeling surges of nirvana and euphoria overtake your body. toji purrs in contentment, wide open palms slapping against the foamy ring mat before sticking out his lengthy rosy tongue. youâre catching irregular heavy breaths right along with choso, full lungs preparing to collapse and give out before you pulse.
the moment toji drags his long tongue over the dampened spot of where you just made a messâyou felt yourself throb yet again.
so nasty, he had no shame at all. choso watched too, and he felt the exact same way as you did.
âwhat a mess,â and with another throaty chuckle leaving his lips, he cleans the mat off entirely before going between your legs. you moan, his palm gifting your cunt with a single abrupt spank. youâre so drenched that a few spurts of your slick coat onto his hand. toji stares at it, scoffing. âpussy tryinâ to talk back i see,â and he rubs his hand in a circular rotation against your cunt, maneuvering all kinds of shapes with his palm. you whimper, grabbing onto chosoâs wrist. in awe, toji watches as dumps of cum ooze out of your opening and he even licks that up too, sticky black hair all unkempt and gluing against his forehead. the thin black bangs that run down his brows gives him a more alluring look and he hums, darkened eyes meeting his partnerâs. âchoso. donât be a zombie. câmeree.â
you were definitely fuckedâ
being laid out, defeated and just stupidly stupid.
your legs sprawl outward as theyâre both right between them. taking turns, flicking tongues of each against your swollen cunt. they took fighting over you to an entire new level. as they were drinking you dry â you couldnât help but imagine the lewd thought of taking them both at the same time. youâd probably get crushed, you could barely even handle one as is, but two? thatâd be an actual knockout for real.
as youâre still in a trancing daze, you watch both of the boxers with wide rounded eyes, grabbing both of them by the hair. thereâs choso whoâs really sweet and gentle, giving your pussy soft kitten kisses, softly brushing a thumb down your slit.
and then thereâs toji . .
the clit biter - opposite of choso being the clit kisser, he doesnât care.
with ravened brows furrowing up, heâs so rude to your pussy. every few seconds, heâd tenderly nibble against your pulsating nub, knowing that youâre sensitive there. with a smug grin, he shifts his eyes at you to stare at you dead in the face whilst heâs right between your legs. heâs messy too, moving his head from side to side, his scar swipes against your cunt every now and then.
not only was he messy but he was a hogger. he slurps you clean, luxuriating the tasteless flavor on his tongue before he hears choso cutely huff out in frustration.
âtoji, youâre hogging her. âs no fair,â he grunts, dark eyes catching a glimpse at him from his hazy peripherals.
âcry âbout it,â and he spits on your cunt, hooked bump of his nose rubbing all against your slit.
already - tojiâs chin was drenched, and so was chosoâs. they both match with a slick of your sheeny arousal dripping down their perfectly chiseled chins. about a good hour had probably passed â then again, you were too dumb to acknowledge the time. all you knew was that you were soaked. you whimper, being nothing but a stiff shivering mess as they devoured you whole.
the numbness in your legs had your back rising up in ecstasy. you wanted more. sloshing slick tongues thrash and glissade against each other before they eventually . . tangle.
toji groans, accidentally meeting with chosoâs lips and its brief. his eyelashes open and he has a sly smile at his rival. you watch the entire thing, the timid boxer versus the smug one. tojiâs hand still remains on your folds and heâs multitasking, seductively licking chosoâs bottom lip - still locking his gaze on him. heâs starting to taking his attention off of you. âhm, donât tell me you wanted attention from me ân not her this entire time, âcho.â
a lump gets caught in his throat. choso grows flustered, hearing his own pulse shoot out through his ears as his lips made contact against his rival. âiââ
heâs hard, flaccid still, but definitely hard. there was a loud silence once a smack noise leaves there lips the second they each depart. chosoâs got a pout, a longing pout before he tries to act tough.
âshut up, toji.â he grouses, trying to hide his embarrassment.
âhow âbout ya make me,â and youâre just sat there dumbfounded with your legs still sprawled as if you werenât just being fought over - invisible questions marks pop up everywhere over your head. what about you? what about you. with quick reflexes, he pins choso flat down on his back before snickering, having the most lewd back arch imaginable.
âour re-match is tonight after all, pretty boy.â
Bury Me | Masterlist
Pairing: Yoongi x Reader Summary: âSomeone who loves you wouldnât do thisâ - Conan Gray (Family Line) Genre: Mafia!AU, Arranged Marriage, Angst, Fluff Warnings: Violence, Swearing Rating: PG-13 A/N: Okay. Letâs give this Mafia AU another shot so everyone can please stop reading my old mafia fic that is just terrible and iâm so sorry Other:Â Masterlist
Chapters
0. Teaser
1. A White Dress
2. Skyline Stars
3. Ruins
4. Caskets and Gold Roses
UKIYO â§ jeon Jungkook
summary: itâs the start of summer and thereâs nothing better than dipping your toes in the sand and falling for a local boy who plays beach volleyball in his free time. heâs charming in a way youâve never seen and you seem to understand each other better than one could imagine. both stuck in an awkward time of self discovery, you try to live in the moment and forget about your worries till they become too hard to ignore.
The Japanese word ukiyo (pronounced "u-key-yo") means "living in the moment" or "detached from the troubles of life".
â§ genre/au: summer romance, local beach boy!jk x city girl!y/n, [she/her, afab]
â§ 17.7k words
warnings: smut, fluff, âcoming of ageâ but theyâre in their twenties, jk falls first. oral [f receiving]. unprotected bc theyâre literally on a boat. hair pulling. jk is kinda rich boy. oc seems mean but sheâs got mean vibes but just sassy and jk likes it. jk was previously engaged. law student jk. intimate missionary. jk is a volleyball player. think beach town vibes. his ex is kinda stuck upâall his friends are. jk is kinda lovesick puppy who needs aftercare lol
inspired by, Nicholas Sparksâ âThe Last Songâ
songs: tyrant â coldplay, mind over matter â young the giant, left hands free â alt-j, omg â suki waterhouse, sex drug etc â beach weather
â§
For a long time, summer was the only thing to look forward to in the year. The days were longer spent outside enjoying time with your friends and letting yourself sleep in until noon. As you grew older with more responsibilities that didnât suddenly disappear when the temperature grew warmer, you began to lose feelings for the season. It made no difference in your life anymore and you longed for the days it would.
Maybe thatâs why it was so easy for you to drop everything and leave your worries behind. A couple months in the sun, no stress, nothing holding you back.
âI still canât believe I managed to convince you,â Your friend said for the third time in the last hour. You couldnât help but roll your eyes, again, âI still canât believe it either, donât make me regret it.â
Hoseok mocked you using a high pitched voice, turning the Jeep Wrangler into the driveway of a modern beach house, âHow could you regret these next few weeks waking up to the waves crashing on the shore?â
âWhat magazine did you read that off of?â Your friend asked from the backseat, laughing to herself at his expense, âI hate when you talk corny.â
âWhatever, you guys are so ungrateful,â Hoseok jokes, pulling the car in âparkâ and powering the engine off, âNext time Iâll invite someone else to come withâsomeone who I won't have to beg!â
âBoohoo,â You pretended to whine, getting out of the car and racing to get to your luggage first, âYou love begging for me.â
âYou wish,â He says with a scoff, âHurry up and find your rooms, I want to get down to the beach as soon as possible.â
The beach was at its peak time of day where the sun sat the highest and almost every foot of sand was covered with peopleâs belongings. Not far from shore were rows of volleyball courts and crowds of people watching and as much as you wanted to avoid that busy side, it was the way to the boardwalk. You had no choice but to follow your friends in that direction. They were steps before you, already arguing about which store to go into first or what food stand youâll go to but you were distracted by the large Ferris wheel in the back.
Maybe your focus should have been on the matches happening all around you but by the time you realized that it was too late. The white ball barely grazed your side when a tall figure headed straight into you with a loud thud.
A low grunt left your lips as you hit the sand with such a force that it physically ached for a moment. Your hands and face were practically covered in sand it was hard to acknowledge whatever gibberish your assailant spat out.
He didnât have time to get a good look at you as he rushed to his feet, taking your arm and pulling you up abruptly, âShit, Iâm so sorry, Iââ
âItâs fine,â your tone came out harsher than expected and it probably had something to do with the guy who loomed over you, and how embarrassed you felt. Up ahead your two friends were barely realizing you werenât behind them and turning to find you, laughing once they did.
The stranger let his gaze trace over you with sudden curiosity, not at all intimidated by your attempt at a scowl. Now that he was looking at you up close, he had to admit he liked what he saw. He couldnât help but grin nervously, âIâm sorry.â
His smile made you glare as you dusted sand off your jeans, âReally? I canât tell.â
âI⊠itâs just, usually when thereâs a ball flying people tend to dodge it,â he was walking backwards now as you tried leaving, he wanted to face you when he talked and it made his cocky smile all the more unbearable. Youâve just met the guy and he hadnât given the best impression yet. Honestly, youâre just tired from the trip and youâre hungry so you blame that on your mood but you just want to escape this embarrassment of falling.
A scoff left your lips, âAre you saying that this is my fault? Maybe if you all played the game on the court, you wouldnât have run after it.â
You were giving him attitude and yet he didnât back down from returning it with a sweet smile.
âJungkook!â Someone called from behind but the guy didnât bother to even look back at the paused game. Instead he kept up with you, âYouâre right, itâs partially my fault too so how can I make this up to you?â
You stopped walking, looking at him. You didnât know him and he didnât know you so there was no need to hold him up from his game any longer, âDonât worry about it.â
âBut I canât go on like this,â The stranger, Jungkook, said, âNot until I know youâre not mad anymore.â
The way you rolled your eyes excited him in a good way. He wasnât amusing enough for you and it was rare for him not to be.
âJungkook! Come on man, the game!â
âY/n!â Hoseok said loudly, âHurry up, Iâm starving.â
Just like that, the two of you walked away from each other and you had to tell yourself not to look back at him. You didnât want to catch him doing the same before he went back to playing.
âAre you okay?â Hyeri asked, still laughing lightly, helping you shake off sand, âI was going to help you but then I saw you talking to that hot guy and I didnât want to intervene.â
âSo considerate,â you mumbled sarcastically, trying to hide your smile as you walked the steps up to the pier and forgot about whatever was happening on the sand.
The stranger really was attractive, and if he hadnât toppled you over like it was nothing you might have stayed a little longer. When you spotted him below you couldnât help but look him over. He wore a pair of blue and white striped swimming trunks and no shirt which gave you a good look at his muscular back and sleeve of tattoos. Compared to the players around him, he looked noticeably different from the rest and you kind of liked that.
âWhat are we eating?â You asked your friends who shrugged, still indecisive.
Hours after the sunset and Jungkookâs adrenaline from winning began to slowly settle down, he walked along the boardwalk with his partner. The two of them are trying to waste time for a while before their night plans come along.
âI know Yeaun is around here somewhere and if sheâs here then that means Chae-hi isnât far,â Jimin said looking around the crowded boardwalk while Jungkook followed behind lazily, âWhich means a fun night for us so letâs find them.â
He could hear what Jimin was saying but he wasnât truly listening. His attention had drifted away from the conversation the second he looked to the side and found a familiar silhouette in the distance. Well, not too familiar but he recognized it from when he crashed into you earlier.
You were with your friends at some jewelry stand looking over all the handmade bracelets and necklaces, such a short distance from him. He could easily make it over to you in no time.
âI donât really want to see Yeaun,â Jungkook said, eyes trained on you. Jimin groaned in response, whipping back to his friend and shaking his head. He followed his line of sight and jumped in front of him.
âNo, look over here, weâve got plans,â Jimin said hoping to pull Jungkookâs attention away from some stranger, âWe told Chae-hi and Yeaun weâd met them tonight.â
âNo, you have plans, I never agreed to anything,â Jungkook said with a laugh, clearly amused. He tried to see if you were still there but when he looked back you were already walking away.
âDonât be that way, think about me. Your best friend, who has been trying to get with Chae-hi for weeks now,â Jimin begged, making Jungkook sigh with defeat. He didnât say anything as he motioned for Jimin to lead the way and went on with his life.
â§
Thereâs a story about how you found yourself moving into a beach house with your best friends for the summer. The opportunity sort of fell at your feet when Hoseokâs sister had to leave abroad for a couple months because of her job. She lived in a nice house on the beach that would need to be looked after and thatâs when she decided to tell her younger brother about it.
Not long after, he came to you and Hyeri and asked if you wanted to join. It took a long time for him to convince you but when you realized how shitty life currently was back home, there was nothing holding you back.
Your first week has been fun getting to enjoy the warm water and sand between your toes. Youâve gotten into a bit of a routine in the area and youâve begun to familiarize yourself with the roads and places. Thatâs probably why you were doing Hoseok a favor by helping him out today.
Heâs busy taking care of some errands for his sister and asked if you could bring his car into the shop for some maintenance, considering Hyeri liked sleeping past noon, you had no choice but to agree to it all on your own.
âWhat can we do for you?â A guy in a dark gray button up and oil streaks across his hands asked you once you made it to the auto shop.
âJust an oil change.â
Jungkook had nearly forgotten about his encounter on the beach. There wasnât much for him to remember anyway and heâs never been the type to hold onto something so meaningless. He carried on with his usual routine and busied himself away at work.
The shop he worked at was busy all of the time and it was a great distraction from whatever else happened in his life so he truly loved it. He loved getting to work with cars and getting his hands dirty. He worked with people he was friends with and sometimes, if heâs really lucky, someone who catches his attention will stagger in.
When he found you standing in the office with his boss signing papers he was visibly taken back. He had been too busy helping Namjoon take a wheel off a black Sedan, to notice when you came in but he was too late now. You were already finishing up whatever you were doing with Jin and leaving.
âIâll be back,â Jungkook told Namjoon, tossing him the wrench he had been using and heading straight to the front.
You went across the street to the small diner and he had to think about this. Part of him didnât feel the need to see you again, mostly because he was embarrassed by toppling you over and probably how he sounded. Part of him wanted to ask for your name, apologize and try and see if youâll talk to him.
âIâm taking an early lunch,â Jungkook told him without much of a car as he hurried to clock out and leave for the diner.
You sat alone in a booth with your laptop open and scrolling through a website filled with job offers. It was partially out of boredom and a reminder that you needed to find somewhere for when you get back home. You could look for something in the field you used to study in but how far could you get with it?
âExcuse me,â he stood in front of you now, âI donât know if you remember me from a few days ago butââ
âI remember,â you said blandly, looking up at Jungkook with a mixture of boredom and a small hint of possible curiosity. He looked very different with a shirt on, his abs werenât as distracting but he still had an intimidating build. Thatâs why his pretty face surprised you under all that sweat and car grease. He was clearly one of the mechanics and has somehow made his way to you.
âRight, uh,â he swooped in to sit across from you, âI wanted to apologize. I didnât mean to knock you down and sometimes when Iâm playing, I kinda get a little too excited so Iâm sure I was just talking and talking.â
Youâre assuming he meant how he followed after you and smiled so arrogantly when you looked visibly annoyed with him. What you donât get is why heâs apologizing again, you werenât still upset over that.
âItâs fine,â you reminded him with a confused look, trying to read what he was really here for, âYou work across the street?â
âYeah, Iâm Jungkook,â He finally introduced himself, âI saw you earlier and it was time for lunch so I came to talk to you.â
You didnât say anything for a while and the silence wasnât broken until the waitress came and asked what Jungkook would like. He brushed her off with a âWhatever sheâs havingâ and looked at you curiously.
âOkay,â Youâre definitely not from around here because he wouldâve recognized you so just who are you? He cleared his throat awkwardly, âUm, yknow, usually when someone gives you their name you say yours back.â
âY/n,â You said distantly, âCan I ask you something?â
âYes, anything,â Jungkook sat straighter, almost reaching up to fix his hair but stopping himself. He wasnât nervous or anything but youâre not speaking to him with the same flirtatious tone and itâs confusing him.
âWhat are some fun things you can do around here other than the usual tourist stuff?â You asked him suddenly, âYou are a local, I assume.â
âYou assume right,â Jungkook nodded as he bit his lip in thought, âI could always show you better than I can tell you.â
âYouâre a funny guy, yâknow?â You smiled, âBut seriously, what is there to do?â
Heâs pretty sure that was just a rejection so it took him a moment to bounce back from it and tried to catch himself from doing it again.
By the time the car was ready, you were paying for your meal and hurrying to leave while Jungkook ate and enjoyed the last of his break. For the rest of the day he found himself thinking about you.
Heâs lived a very repetitive and predictable life. Since early childhood heâs had the same classmates and friends, and gone to the same places and events. Heâs known the same girls and has hung out with the same people for years. The only time he got any sense of independence is when he was gone for law school but now that heâs done and has returned home for the sake of his family and friends, heâs reminded once again of the repetitiveness.
Maybe thatâs why heâs a little excited to meet someone new. He just had a strong feeling that you were more interesting than you let on and he wanted to know more.
He didnât know that you felt the same and had to ignore these thoughts so you wouldnât start anything with him. Jungkook was attractive and youâve moved on from the fall aside from the slight bruising, and you were just trying to enjoy your time. Did you really need to meet someone?
In all honesty, he didnât seem as arrogant covered in sweat, he looked good and he seemed nice.
But did that mean you wanted to waste your time with him?
â§
It was a crush, nothing but a small, schoolboy crush that occupied his mind from time to time. In all honesty, it was easy to ignore when he got carried away in his day to day life, itâs only when he sees you or you cross his mind for the shortest of seconds, that he finds himself getting lost. He doesnât care for the girls his best friend likes to hang around, nor does he feel the need to upturn himself out there. Lately, all heâs wanted is to be with someone who makes him forget about himself and maybe he wasnât looking in the right places if he thought you could help.
It was wishful thinking for him to hold so much thought over a stranger who couldnât care less to know his name, but thatâs what he liked. He wondered when he would run into you again, what he might say in hopes of getting a response and what would happen after that. He even wondered if youâd be at the beach tonight while everyone told ghost stories and drank bottles of Soju one after the other.
What does he say when he finally sees you looking at him?
You spotted him first, hating how much you wanted for him to look up and see you too. He was with his friends and you had no intentions to approach him but⊠well, he was cute. You canât act like he isnât and heâs oddly charming which makes him memorable but it was a bad idea. This trip was meant to be fun with your friends and thatâs itâyou werenât going to make time for strangers.
âFor once we donât have to worry about an Uber and can walk our asses home,â Hoseok said standing over a keg, âSo I donât know about you guys, but Iâm blacking out tonight.â
âWhen has anything ever stopped you from accomplishing that?â You asked him, turning your back to the familiar stranger, âYouâre never the one ordering it anyway.â
âNo, heâs usually the one weâre pushing into the backseat,â Hyeri joined in on the teasing.
âShh, why do I always feel judged by you two? Is this what friends are for?â Hoseok pretended to be hurt as he filled your cup with beer.
âSheâs not from around here, is she?â Jungkook asked as he looked across at you. You havenât noticed himâhe doesnât thinkâbut heâs noticed you and for some reason that excited him. Well, for one specific reason and it was simply the fact that he likes you. Does he know enough about you to pinpoint this statement? No, but he knows that he feels strange when youâre around. That has to mean something. The longest relationship heâs ever been in was with Yeaun and he doesnât remember feeling this excited to meet someone.
âHow would I know?â Jimin asked when a scoff, barely bothering to look over at you. He couldnât help but roll his eyes, âYou rather think about her than Yeaun? Youâre insane.â
âAre you sure itâs Chae-hi you like and not Yeaun? You sure do bring her up around me a lot,â Jungkook rolled his eyes.
âIsnât it obvious? I want you to get back together with Yeaun so that Chae-hi will think about me instead of her âheartbrokenâ friend,â Jimin handed him a cup of beer, âTake one for the team.â
âNo, I donât think so,â He chuckled, âWe broke up for a reason so donât push it.â
âNot a good reason,â Jimin mumbled under his breath but Jungkook chose to ignore it.
âThere you are,â the devil herself said as she found him, âWe were wondering where you two ran off, right?â
âRight,â Chae-hi agreed, âHi Jimin.â
âSo, itâs kind of boring here isnât it?â Yeaun asked looking at Jungkook for assurance, âPlus all the low lives are starting to come in and I really donât want to be around any of them. We were wondering if you guys wanted to come back to mine.â
âTo do what?â Jimin asked while Jungkook stood back disinterested and distracted. He couldnât even pretend to be interested when he was focused on someone else entirely.
By pure luck, he looked back to see if you were still standing where you were before and this time you locked eyes with him. Without much care for the conversation he was supposed to be in right now, he walked off while they discussed plans involving a hot tub.
âIâm starting to think youâre following me,â Jungkook first said as you nearly bumped into him in an attempt to get closer to the bonfire. He walked alongside you with ease, âFirst, on the court, then at my job and now here?â
That made you snort in disbelief, shaking your head and trying not to smile, âSomeone seems flattered but I think you have it the wrong way.â
âAs in Iâm the one doing the most to run into you? No, never,â Jungkook spoke dramatically, âThis is all by chance. Thereâs no way I couldâve seen you from over there and decided to come and talk to you instead. That would make me seem desperate, wouldnât it?â
âIt would,â you agreed, slightly amused now as you broke into a small smile, âI didnât take you as the type.â
âWell thatâs because you havenât tried to get to know me, Iâm honestly a catch,â Jungkook joked lightly, following you where you walked off to, âOr are you scared?â
âScared? Of what?â You asked, stopping abruptly and turning to face him with furrowed brows. He couldnât help but smirk, âOh I donât know⊠getting to know someone new. You give me the vibe that you donât like meeting new people.â
âI love meeting new people,â You exaggerated childishly, âWhen they donât fall on top of me.â
âI caught myself, so letâs not lie now,â Jungkook snorted, âBesides, whoâs the one who walked into the middle of a game?â
As he said that, the two of you seemed to have drifted far enough from where the fire had been going, that you found yourself not too far from one of the volleyball nets on the shore. Jungkook looked down at you with clear amusement as you looked up at the net and he walked up to the abandoned volleyball that sat in the sand.
âDo you eat, sleep, and breathe volleyball?â You jokingly asked, finally giving Jungkook some response that implied you were interested in him even slightly.
âOnly on the weekends, sometimes around noon or after work if Iâm free,â Jungkook told you, picking up the ball, âDo you play?â
âNo,â you told him as he began to bounce the ball back and forth between his hands. You looked back at your friends who seemed preoccupied with whatever new friends they made for the night.
âItâs easy,â Jungkook said, âThereâs really only one basic rule, donât let the ball touch the ground.â
âAre you giving me a lesson now?â You asked with slight amusement as he moved to the other side of the net, âIâm warning you, I wonât be any good at it.â
âIâll take it easy on you,â Jungkook tossed the ball your way and although you reached out to hit it, you missed and it landed a few feet behind you. He couldnât help but laugh, âOkay, maybe you try and throw it.â
âBut how do I throw it?â You looked up the tall net wondering how you would make it over. You held it up and tried doing a practice hit while he tried teaching you.
âJust try a simple serve, you can hit it from under or throââ
âOh my god,â you broke out into a nervous laugh as Jungkook covered his face with his hand. The ball sat at his feet, completely oblivious to the fact it had just pummeled straight into his face. You covered your mouth in an attempt to stop laughing but you were embarrassed and couldnât do anything but try and laugh it off, âIâm so sorry.â
âReally? I canât tell?â Jungkook said sarcastically, sounding eerily similar to you when you first met but still playful. In all honesty, the pain wasnât too bad but it was humiliating and the only thing he could think about is how youâre trying not to laugh, âYou think itâs funny?â
âNo! No, I donât, I just um,â you tried to stop, âI justâŠâ
âYou just what?â Jungkook looked at you, slowly making his way to your side and you inadvertently began to step back, worried he might actually be upset, âYou like laughing at causing other people pain?â
âDid it actually hurt?â You asked with surprise, still stepping back the closer he got.
âMy ego, yeah,â he joked, âAnd I feel like we need to get even.â
âWe did, think about it as me getting back at you for the other day!â You tried to say, feeling the edge of the ride begin to touch your feet the farther you walked from him.
âReally? So this was all part of revenge?â Jungkook asked, âI donât think so, I suggest you run.â
âWhat?â You stopped to think, âJungkââ
And it began. He kicked water at you once the tide was close again and without thinking, you jumped back. You werenât wearing a bathing suit or anything appropriate for the water so he canât. Youâre in a simple top and flowy, long skirt, not something you wanted wet, âDonât you dare.â
âWhy? Scared of a little water?â He tried to kick water again but this time you moved back in time and he smirked, âItâs better than getting hit in the face. Will you take care of me if I get a concussion?â
You scoffed, laughing, âDonât you wisâJungkook!â
He ran after you as you took off in a jog and before he knew it, you were splashing water back at him, not caring about how wet you got. The night was young and you were having a good time, there wasnât much to worry about other than making sure you got Jungkook before he could get you.
Not far from where the two of you played in the ocean with the moon reflecting against the waves, a few pairs of eyes watched you unimpressed. Jimin didnât have much to think about the matter, he just couldnât understand it. Why would Jungkook waste his time on someone he didnât even know?
Yeaun was right here desperate to have him back and instead heâs wandered off with some stranger acting childish. It doesnât make sense, and neither does the big grin on Jungkookâs face once he caught you and tackled you into the low tide, both getting drenched in water.
âJungkook!â He ignored the call of his name as he watched you shake sand out of your hair with curiosity. You looked annoyed even if you smiled and he knows you probably are considering he pushed you into the water but youâre not cussing him out yet. Youâre not screaming at him for getting you into the water so maybe it was a good sign.
âAre we even now?â You asked breathlessly as you looked forward to where your friends were and turned away from Jungkook.
âI guess, for now at least,â He teased, walking toward Jimin, âIt depends on if I bruise or not.â
âI didnât hit you that hard,â you scoffed, smiling and shaking your head in disbelief. At some point in your ascend back up the shore, Jungkook got you to finally give him your number. You didnât question when his friend approached him, going on about something you didnât bother listening to and turned in search for someone you knew.
âYou look like you need a towel,â someone said from your right. It took you a second to realize she was talking to you, much less holding out a clean towel for you.
âThanks,â you said, trying to wipe off some of the sand with the beach towel the stranger handed to you. Hyeri was off talking with some guy and you had no clue where Hoseok was so as of now, you were on your own here. The girl was pretty and she seemed nice enough so you didnât mind responding to her approach.
âIâm getting sand all over it,â you tried to make some sort of conversation, âSorry, Iâm Y/n.â
âDonât even worry about it, Iâm Yeaun,â She said with a smile, âYouâre not from around here, are you?â
âIs it that obvious?â You asked, laughing lightly. Yeaun just shrugged as she got closer to you, âNot really, but, well⊠thereâs just some people you should always avoid.â
Your brows began to furrow with confusion, âLike?â
âNo, I donât want to start anything,â she shook her head no, âWe donât know each other and youâll probably think Iâm meddling but⊠okay, Jeon Jungkook.â
You didnât say anything to that as you tried to get a good look at the girl. Yeaun was pretty with sun-kissed skin and golden hair that shone under the moonlight. She seemed soft and glowed with a brightness that felt contagious but you didnât know her. You donât know why she brought up Jungkook or why she even approached you so you had nothing to say back to her.
âI just mean⊠youâre not from around here and you seem smart,â Yeaun said sympathetically, âJungkookâs kind of a known player and I donât want you to fall for his tricks, trust me, heâs not worth it.â
âTrust me, itâs not like that,â you said, suddenly disinterested in conversation with her and more focused on finding your friends, âThanks for looking out for me though.â
Yeaun watched you walk away and not bother to turn back and she had to leave like it didnât bother her to be brushed to the side. She canât tell if you took what she said into consideration or if you couldnât care less and she didnât like that. She didnât like that she didnât know you and she didnât know about your relationship with Jungkook or how you know him.
â§
His life was utterly perfect to anyone who thought about it. He had the bestest of friends, the closest family, the most money and a promising future. Everything he had ever wanted was handed right to him and in a sense, it made him arrogant. It was a given that he would end up that way and maybe thatâs why heâs always surrounded himself with people of the like. He didnât despise any of his friends, just sometimes, when he listened to the conversations they would have, he wanted to disagree.
âYeaun said youâve been avoiding her,â Jin said as he pulled a golf club out of his bag.
âGreat, now youâre talking about her too?â Jungkook asked, lining his club up with a shiny white golf ball, âI already get enough of it from my parents and Jimin.â
âWell yeah, when you suddenly call off a year long engagement with someone youâve known all your life, people question it,â Jin said, watching Jungkook swing the club back and shoot the ball into the air, âWeâre worried about you.â
âDonât be,â Jungkook mumbled, âBesides, thereâs someone else, I donât know if you know her, her nameâs Y/n.â
âDoesnât ring a bell,â Jin shrugged, moving his visor down to block more of the summer sun out of his eyes. He wore white golfing gloves and a pair of Raybans, making him look straight out of a country club catalog.
Jungkook sighed, growing more restless by the minute. Heâs only seen you on few occasions and heâs yet to leave a good impression on you where he can ask for your number or something, âShe was hanging out with this guy, I know you know him but I canât think of his nameâyou dated his sister.â
âHoseok?â Jin asked, âI remember hearing about how he was in town. How do you know this isnât his girlfriend youâre hitting on?â
âItâs not,â Jungkook said, âI donât think. I donât know.â
âBut what about her?â Jin asked, hopping in the passengerâs side of the golf cart, âYou donât know a thing about the girl but you like her and youâre willing to throw away your future because of it.â
âIâm not throwing anything away,â Jungkook said with a scoff, âBut whatever, you donât get it.â
He spent the evening golfing on a private course not far from the beach where you wandered around with a book in hand.
You enjoyed passing time with your friends but sometimes, you just needed time to yourself and you would find yourself wandering off on your own without much care for anything else. Your friends didnât mind when you went off and you always made sure to tell them where you would go so there was never any problem. Ever since you got here, youâve been doing things on your own.
âI knew I would find you around here.â
You didnât respond at first, still debating if the person was talking to you, but one look up told you he was. Although you wanted to resist the urge to smile, you couldnât help it.
âStalker,â You said with a small sigh, closing your book. He didnât say anything as he took a seat down in the sand next to you. âYouâre on my turf, remember? What are you reading by the way?â
You glanced at the cover of your book, âNothing excitingâhowâd you know I was here?â
âI looked for a dark, brooding figure and assumed it was you,â Jungkook joked, âAnd just an fyi, my face still hurts.â
âIâm sure you've been hit worse,â You said sarcastically, sitting up and watching him get comfortable. He was dressed in a light color linen button up and shorts, the first buttons were undone and a cliche shell necklace sat perfectly against his collarbone. He was attractive and youâve thought so since the beginning but something was holding you back.
Did you really want to waste your time on a stranger you wonât know in a few months?
âWhat are you doing tonight?â He asks suddenly.
âSleeping, hopefully,â you told him, a small smile when you noticed him roll his eyes.
âItâs the summer, the sunâs out, you live on the beachâdonât look at me like that, itâs a small town. Word gets around when a new person shows up,â Jungkook said with a shrug, knowing itâs him who had been asking about you.
âYouâre just solidifying my stalker allegations, should I report you?â You asked, laughing slightly.
âIâll have you know, a lot of people would love to be stalked by me, you should feel flattered,â He nudged your knee with his.
âWhat? Like itâs hard? Word gets around,â You said to him, âIâve already been warned about getting too close to you.â
Jungkook let his brows furrow as he took in what you said but it didnât take long for it to dawn on him. As much as he wanted to act like there was no way his ex girlfriend would approach you, he knew her too well. Who else would talk down on him? Who else would feel threatened when he ignores them? What does she think she gains from telling you to stay away from him? Isnât it his decision who he approaches and does she think youâre just going to fall in line like everyone else does?
This is the sort of thing that pisses him off. Heâs not a bad guy at all, he doesnât sleep around, he focuses on his goals, he has fun with his friends⊠so why?
âBut if it makes you feel any better, Iâm not very good at listening to what Iâm told,â You finally said, standing up with your book in hand and pulling the sand-covered towel, âAnd Iâm starving, so whereâs a good place to eat around here?â
As much as he wanted to act like the cool guy and seem indifferent, he couldnât help but break out into a grin. Without wasting another second, he got up and motioned to carry your things, âThereâs a good food shack on the boardwalk. I guess I could show you around.â
âIf it isnât too much of a hassle,â You said playfully, handing him your things.
âSo, I want to know, whatâs a big city girl like yourself doing all the way over here?â He asked on the way up, âOr do you still want to play at being mysterious?â
You rolled your eyes, âI don't usually play games like that, I think youâve got me confused with someone else. I just donât talk if I have nothing to say.â
âInteresting take, I personally never know when to shut up,â Jungkook smiled, pointing up to the restaurant and walking in behind you, âBut seriously, usually the tourists come to pollute our water and get away.â
âAre you always so observant? You give me the vibe that you like to watch other people,â You told him, sitting down at a high round table across from him.
âAnd you give me the vibe that you hate talking about yourself. Why else would you avoid every question I ask?â He asked, raising a brow making you scoff but you couldnât deny it. When the server brought out your menus, she made sure to greet Jungkook like old friends.
âDo you really care to know?â You asked quietly.
âWhy else would I ask? Iâm not pretending to be interested, if thatâs what you think,â Jungkook said honestly.
You didnât say anything for a moment, looking down at the menu contemplating what to order and what to say, âThings were getting a little too complicated back home and my friend asked if I wanted to pack up my things and follow him down for the summer and I said yes.â
âHow broad,â Jungkook said with a small smile, lifting a brow and waiting to see if you would add to it.
âItâs the truth,â you shrugged.
âWhat was complicated?â Jungkook asked.
He looked amused when you narrowed your eyes in response to his probing. âAdulting.â
âYouâll figure it out,â Jungkook shrugged, waiting for the server to come back to take your orders. He let you order first, watching the server give you a look as she listened and followed after with his own.
âHow wise of you to say. What about you?â You asked him, handing the menus back and sliding your drink closer to you.
Jungkook distracted himself playing with the wrapper of his straw and shrugged, âWhat about me? Weâll get to me when you give me the juicy details.â
You couldnât help but scoff, looking out the window to the view of the waves crashing against the shore, âWhat? I told you everything.â
He chuckled, âBarely.â
Rolling your eyes, âRude.â
âReally?â He asked, biting back a smile.
âNo. Youâre actually pretty nice,â once again, you sighed, as if admitting that was hard for you.
âNice? Thatâs what you tell a guy when youâre going to reject him. I just want to know more about you but thereâs not much I can go with. How long are you staying?â Jungkook finally asked you.
âA couple months, are you already dreading it when I leave?â You asked, sounding sarcastic and amused.
âMaybe, youâve left an impression despite what you might think. Crushing you under my incredible physique was destiny.â He could tell you wanted to laugh but were refusing to do so.
âCorny.â
âFunny.â He crossed his arms over his chest, leaning back in his chair and making it known that he was going to wait for you however long it took.
âI had this bad roommate situation I couldnât take anymore and my lease doesnât end for another two months so when Hobi asked me to come with I jumped at the chance. I left my job because itâs draining me and I felt useless so I figured itâd be easier to run away to the beach and deal with it all later. Happy? I was honest.â You rushed the words, half-assed the pace.
It was his turn to narrow his eyes suspiciously but gave in, âContent. Youâll figure it out, you donât seem like the type to wait around for things to fix themselves.â
âReally? Because that feels like what Iâm doing right now. Iâm all the way over here where I havenât done anything but run into this strange guy at the beach who I think might be stalking me,â You said, joking at the end.
âNo, right now youâre trying to live in the moment, nothing wrong with that,â he chuckled, ignoring your joke.
You donât remember much of what you said to him but for some reason Jungkook was very easy to talk to. Maybe itâs because you donât really know him or expect anything from him at all but he got you too open up to him like youâve known him for years. In reality you didnât know anything about him or anyone here for that matter.
âOkay, okay, enough about me. Itâs your turn,â you had finally said between mouthfuls of whatever the two of you ordered and Jungkook couldnât avoid it any longer.
âAlright, Iâm⊠also trying to figure things out on my own. Iâm used to being with certain people and doing certain things and I donât know, at one point I kind of got fed up with everything being so predictable. I want to meet people on my own and not because they know who I am or something,â He rushed his words, âIf I could, Iâd move far away from here but right now I donât think thatâs an option so I settle for next best and stick it out. In all honesty, everythingâs kind of been a bore until I met you, youâre different.â
You raised a brow, mirroring his earlier stance and crossing your arms over your chest, unamused, âHow?â
He smirked, âI donât know yet, I can just tell.â
You never believe a guy when he goes on about how different you are from other girls because usually theyâre just full of shit. Youâre not good at picking the right person so it makes you wary to believe anything he says despite how good he looks saying it.
By the time the bill came, the server made sure to sit it without checking if thatâs what either of you wanted but you didnât hesitate to reach for yours. Jungkook snatched the small slip out of your hand and hurried the server back so he could pay for it in full, giving her a tight smile, âJust one check, thanks.â
âSure thing,â she said with a light scoff that had you looking after her with furrowed brows. Something about the way she acted left you feeling confused.
âWhat a good first date.â Jungkook said at the end, walking outside with you.
âThis wasnât a date,â you teased, thanking him for the meal nevertheless, âBut I should probably call it a night, yâknow.â
âOh yeah, me too,â Jungkook shrugged âBut if youâre not doing anything tomorrow night, we should see each other again.â
âHm, Iâll think about it,â You said playfully, âIf Iâm not busy.â
âYou wonât be,â He smirked, bumping your shoulder with his as the walk turned bumpy and more trail-like as he walked you home, âBut why donât you give me your number and we can talk about it more on the phone.â
âHah, smooth guy, arenât you?â You asked, taking his phone and typing your number in. When you got to the soft trail of greenery and sand that led up to the backyard of the beach house.
âHow about we watch the last few minutes of the sun set together,â he reached for your head and stopped you before you could head up the wooden steps.
âHow about you donât kidnap my friend for the whole evening!â Hoseok shouted suddenly, tripping over his own feet as he ran out the sliding glass door that led to the pool deck, âIâve been worried sick about Y/n.â
âNot true, heâs been sleeping!â Hyeri yelled after him, âBut youâre the guy who tackled my best friend on our first day here.â
âMy reputation precedes me,â Jungkook held his hands up in surrender, âIâm Jungkook. I was just asking if you guys wanted to join us and watch the sun set.â
âHow aesthetic, let me grab some bottles of Soju.â
Your attempt to end your time with Jungkook failed and he seemed pleased with himself for that. He was also polite enough to try and get to know your friends too.
â§
He was having a crisis, he thinks. A real life identity crisis because for the first time in his life he thinks he likes someoneâin a way heâs never liked anyone before. Itâs pathetic and makes him feel so stupid because he barely knows anything about you but itâs the truth. If anything thatâs what makes him like you so much. He likes that he canât tell what youâll say or how youâll react to him, itâs exciting.
He just wants to know if heâs on your mind too.
âWeâre still on for this weekend right?â
âWhat are we doing again?â The road ahead was a scenic path between mountain and sea that led all the way to this private property of his childhood home.
âChae-hiâs birthday trip.â Jimin spoke from the passengerâs seat of the black pick-up truck his best friend paraded in when he wasnât on his dirtbike.
âOh, yeah Iâm not going. I was thinking of taking Y/n sailing,â Jungkook said with a small smile, looking sideways, unable to miss the way Jimin stiffened and went silent. He looked back to the road, hand tightening around the steering wheel slightly, âWhat?â
âNothing,â Jimin scoffed, looking out the window annoyed now. The drive was silent for a while, nothing but the low sound of music and wind blowing through the topless truck.
âWhatâs up with you lately?â He finally asked, âYou barely know the girl and sheâs all you talk about. Weâve had plans to go with everyone.â
By everyone he meant their mutual friendsânot just his ex and her friendâwhich made things worse. Heâs known them all for years and itâs hard to see them when he wants to move on and do his own thing. Jungkook tried not to let Jiminâs tone ruin his mood and sighed, âSorry, man, but Iâm not going. Are we playing later or what?â
âYou sure youâre not busy with your new friends?â Jimin asked, remembering about the night Jungkook had dinner with you. He tried calling him that night to see if he wanted to go out for drinks just to be rejected because Jungkook was too busy with you and your friends.
Jungkook chuckled, âDonât be jealous, youâll always be first in my heart.â
âOh fuck off,â Jimin rolled his eyes, trying to not sound bitter as he asked, âWhatâs your girl doing anyway?â
âY/nâs not my girlâyet, I donât know. She hasnât texted back,â Jungkook said worriedly, making Jimin stare at him strangely.
Itâs not that he had anything against you personally, he just doesnât get it. Youâre a complete stranger who wonât stick around so why has his best friend chosen to hang out with you so much recently. What did you have over the people heâs known all his life? What do you bring to the table?
What did you gain from being around Jungkook?
You couldnât explain it either. All you really knew was that a cute guy who sort of annoyed you in the beginning was starting to rub off on you. Youâve come to enjoy running into him and forcing yourself to open up because heâll listen. It made you feel weird in a good way. You wanted to think about how fun it was to be around him and ignore all the worries youâve had recently.
Even with your close friends, youâve long since stopped talking about the people you were interested in. It wasnât because you didnât trust them or want their advice but sometimes you didnât feel the need to say anythingâespecially if it was harmless fun. Thatâs why when Hyeri approached you about Jungkook, you werenât sure what to say.
âItâs no fair,â Hyeri picked through a crate of strawberries, dropping them into a basket, âI wanted to find a little beach boyfriend, whyâd you get lucky instead.â
âWhat are you talking about?â You asked dumbly, following her down the aisle of produce at the farmerâs market.
âYou know exactly what Iâm talking about,â Hyeri said accusingly, âJungkook.â
âWeâre just hanging out,â You said with a shrug that made her laugh, pushing her sunglasses into her hairline. You knocked against one end of a green watermelon, hoisting it in your hands and continuing past her.
âRight, is that what you called your date the other night? Just a nice early dinner with a hot guy who asked to watch the sunset with you?â She said playfully, âYou like him, donât you.â
âI donât know him,â You insisted. Yes, youâve talked a lot with Jungkook recently and youâve begun to talk about real things in your lives but did that really mean anything? âBesides, in a month and a half Iâll be in my new place settling back into the old routine. Itâs just fun hanging out with him, nothing more, itâd be too complicated.â
âWhatever you say,â Hyeri sighed.
Youâre lying, obviously youâre lying because you do sort of like him but you didnât want to think about it. You didnât want to think about what you could become, you only want to think about now and how things progress. Whatever happens, happens. Thatâs it. Could you pretend like you have no worries aside from who youâll run into on the beach instead?
When your phone rang, you knew immediately who it couldâve been and although Hyeri walked ahead, acting like she couldnât hear it, she was clearly listening. When you answered Jungkookâs call, he was quick to ask about your plans for the upcoming weekend.
â§
âYou want to take me sailing?â
Despite the early hours where the sun has yet to shine through, you still couldnât wrap your mind around it. Even walking along the dock following after Jungkook who led the way through the darkness of the starry sky. âOr are you plotting my murder?â
âWhich would you prefer I do?â He asked teasingly, looking back at you with a grin, âBut seriously, itâll be fun.â
Fun wasnât waking up before the sun did, nor was it following a man you barely know out to the sea. If it werenât for Hyeri begging you to take up his offer, you wouldnât be here right now.
The sailing yacht was bigger than you expected with a small cabin area below deck to sleep and wash up in. Youâve never been on a sailboat before but you didnât think they would look this nice and clean.
âThis is yours?â You asked, watching him put in the arm work to undo the rope that tied the boat to the dock.
âUm, yeah,â Jungkook answered blandly, âKinda?â
âKinda?â
âYeah, itâs mine,â he cleared his throat, helping you carry your bag down to the room before bringing you back up to the galley, âI used to be on a sailing team when I was in school and after I graduated I got this for my friends and I.â
âNice,â You looked around, still in shock at the size of the sails. It was a Beneteau Oceanis 48 with such a sleek, clean look you were scared to sit on any part of it. You wanted to ask how much it was but resisted the urge to, scared youâd sound rude.
Still half asleep, you watched Jungkook set sail behind the wheel, his jacket already off and the sleeves of his linen shirt.
âSleep a little, weâve got time,â he said lastly.
It went easy between you two, you felt comfortable and for some reason safe with him enough to letyourself relax around him. You can't remember falling asleep but at some point you had and when you were woken up it was with him dropping anchor in the middle of the open sea.
The waves were calm, breathtaking deep blue and you could see the line of gold separating the ocean from the sky. It was beginning to warm up but you still shivered in your thin sweater, looking up feeling awestruck by the view.
"Look who's finally awake," Jungkook said softly as he secured the wheel and came over to where you sat. He grabbed his jacket â that he had grown too hot for â and placed it over your front. You took in the light scent of his cologne that lingered on the Northface and thanked him, "You said I could sleep."
"I know," he sat across from you, looking at you with a gentle look on his eyes, "I did wake you up pretty early, but look at the view. Do you like it?"
"Yeah, it's nice," You leaned against the edge of the seat, staring down at the dark navy blue water, almost catching your reflection in it. The line of gold was beginning to widen and a circle of light was bouncing off the ocean beautifully. "If you plan on pushing me over the edge, now's the time."
"You're dumb," he laughed, kicking your foot with his playfully. You smiled, trying not to laugh as you looked at him, "Aren't you cold?"
"No, it's hard work getting a sail boat out and I was starting to sweat," Jungkook lifted an arm, flexing it, "But these guns never fail me."
"That's too bad, I was hoping you'd want to keep me warm but I don't want you to overheat," You teased, looking at him invitingly and his eyes shifted to the open space next to you. To set it off, you even winked.
"You know what, now that you mention it, being surrounded by this sea breeze is making me a little chilly," Jungkook pretended to shiver as he got up.
"The sun's rising, I'm sure you'll warm up again really soon," You said as he sat next to you, touching your leg and making you put it on his lap.
"Who knows, I'm suddenly freezing, come closer," he rested his arm on the back of your seat, pulling you onto his lap, "I heard body heat is good to warm up."
"You can always just put your jacket on," You pretended to argue making him roll your eyes, almost sassily.
"But you look so much better in it," He brushed hair out of your face that the wind blew over, finger softly tracing the side of your face.
"I hate to admit this but... you're too good to be true," You said honestly, shifting your gaze away, "Like, too perfect."
"But I'm not," Jungkook argued quietly, "I'm just... I don't know, I'm not acting like myselfâor maybe I am and haven't realized it but I think it's you. I want to impress you."
You didn't know how to respond but he didn't mind. He was more focused on the soft glimmer in your eye as you watched the sky turn a powder blue with orange, hearing the seagulls and light whooshing sound of the sails.
It's bad how affected you're leaving him and you don't even know it.
"Y/n," Jungkook tried getting your attention again, leaned his head against your shoulder. You didn't have to say anything to know what he was asking. The first soft brush of his lips against your jaw had you succumbing to his effect. He tilted your chin with the tip of his fingers, catching your lips with his, finally.
How do you describe it?
How do you explain how soft and tender his lips felt? How his fingers grazing your skin sent a shiver down your spine and how he was surprisingly very loving with his affection?
This man who you barely knew and trusted too much was making you melt in his arms, kissing you and making it feel like you've never been kissed before.
"This is bad," he mumbled against your lips, pulling back to catch his breath, eyes still closed, "I really like you."
You gave him one quick peck of a kiss, sitting up, "Tell me all about it then."
Jungkook couldn't he'll but crack a grin, licking the taste of you off his lips. He wouldn't be able to shut up if he did.
You're beautiful, stunning, truly.
Even with your face in sand or your hair a mess, a scowl or pout, just beautiful to him. It was so stupid for him to be swayed by that but it's obviously what pulled him in first.
You were so meanâhe thought, at leastâbut it never stopped him from approaching you. It's like he knew it wasn't your intention to come off so cold and when you'd joke back with him, he could see the hint of mischief in your eyes. It made him want to push your buttons or say something he knew would get a reaction from you.
You're different and he wishes it didn't sound so stupid like he knew you would think if he ever told you but you are. You're like no one he's metâreally met, beyond surface level interests or habits. You responded differently, looked at him differently, treated him different.
"I won't shut up if I do," he said honestly, "Can't I just show you, instead?"
"How suggestive," you giggled, letting him kiss you again. There was more force to it this time, like he really meant it. The first one was firm and teasing, really testing the waters when his hand disappeared into your hair to keep you from pulling away.
You were spending the golden hour of the late sunrise with Jungkook sailing on a boat in the ocean. The view was amazing and his lips were so soft.
His lip ring is surprisingly warm when it brushes your lips, and his tongue feels slick against yours. He held you closely making you feel secure and safe [?], and at one point you made it onto his lap, practically straddling him.
You pressed closer to him eagerly and the movement makes his hands travel toward your hips for support, his jacket long forgotten on the floor. The seat was hard underneath him but if he mentioned it you might pull away and that's the last thing he wanted in the moment. Jungkook liked kissing you, he liked feeling your lips trail down his jaw and toward his neck where you didn't shy away from leaving open mouth kissed against his Adam's apple or under his ear.
"Y/nâ" his hands circled around you tighter, "Have you gotten a good look at the cabin?"
Your brows furrowed momentarily, looking down the short steps to the cabin door where a big bed was seen through the window, "No, want to show me?"
You began to get up from Jungkook's lap, making his hands slide off down your hip, leading you to the cabin.
Jungkook wasnât as subtle as he hoped to be when he pressed you into his chest, peppering your shoulder with light and teasing kisses taking you further into the room. A small smile played on your lips when you turned to face him, circling your arms around his neck.
He didnât question it when you walked him toward the bed instead, making him sit down as you kissed and straddling him once more. You were a good kissed and Jungkook could attest to that by the way your tongue slid between his lips to seek his out. It was a surprise for you to be so forward with him but he wasnât complaining at all. If anything it made him want to take it further. He wasnât shy with his touches anymore and you could feel his hands circle down to your butt, pressing you firmly into his lap.
It was hard to ignore his arousal from your simple make-out. It was evident in his shorts and it made you want to keep going. You began to rock your hips against him lightly, feeling his growing bulge apply pressure between your legs.
âCan we get this off?â Jungkook asked about your jacket first, feeling you miles away and when you unzipped it, you pulled off your shirt too leaving him breathless, âYouâre bolder than I thought.â
âIs that a bad thing?â You asked, watching his fingers trace down your bare sides, looking at your bra and chest. His finger hooked into the hem of your jeans as if to teasingly ask if they can come off next and you gave him the go ahead, starting to unbutton his shirt for him.
âNever,â he sighed, eyes closing when your hands touched his muscular chest. His hands snuck under her jeans playing with your underwear and grinding your hips against his worn more purpose drawing out a small groan in the process.
When your hips began to move on their own, teasing his aching member, he leaned forward to kiss along your neck, finding your pulse points with ease and reaching behind you for the clasp of your bra to get it off next.
Your arms circled his neck, hugging his head close to feel his lips on your skin and moved your hips with more determined rhythm. Youâd be lying if you said his kisses werenât turning you on and sending shivers down your spine. Jungkook slid your bra off letting it hit the floor while you wrestled his opened shirt off his shoulders and hugged him in a kiss.
âYouâre so sexy,â Jungkook whispered, kissing the soft mound of your breasts, âEven when I had you in the ground covered in sand thatâs all I could think about.â
âAnd here I thought it was my personality that drew you in,â You teased, letting him finally turn you on your back beneath him. He pulled your jeans off leaving you in your small slither of panty.
âTrust me, it did,â Jungkook said, kissing along your thighs, âHurt my feelings that the pretty girl from the beach couldnât care less about me.â
âA real shot to your ego,â you raised your knees
Jungkook leaned forward to catch your lips in a kiss, hovering over your body, âIt really was.â
A small gasp left your lips as you felt his hand trace down the curve of your sides, slipping into your underwear and feeling the soft slope of your nether region. Your thighs parted more, letting his finger tease your clit.
âI wasnât too impressed in the beginning,â You joked, lifting your hips when you felt his finger begin to feel around your folds, surely finding where the slick began to puddle. He used the wetness to coat your clit, raising a light sigh from your lips there he swallowed in a kiss.
âIâm well aware,â Jungkook whispered against your lips. You rose your hips to meet his hand, finding some stimulation that made your body respond with raise bumps in pleasure, âWhat about now?â
As he asked, his coated middle finger finally pressed into your wet cunt, with his palm against your clit and grinding into it as he pushed his finger into the hilt. You dug your nails into his tatted forearm to ground yourself against the sudden feeling and holding back the loud moan that almost slipped. He smiled, clearly amused by your reaction. He maneuvered his hand around so his thumb could find your clit and with it covered in your arousal it made the slide so much easier.
Jungkookâs long finger slide into your pussy with slight restriction, curling when he pushed all the way in and finding that sweet spot that had your breath hitching and probing at it. You were at a loss for words and he loved it, it made him want to kiss you as he brought you pleasure with just his hand. He wasnât even asking for a response anymore, he was just trying to tell you how heâs felt while he makes you feel good on an expensive sail boat in the sea.
The sunrise had long been forgotten and replaced by the thought of how good he made you feel and he was happy about that.
"Oh, fuck." You gasped, gripping his armas he hooks his finger at just the right angle. You didnât even have to tell him that was the spot that made your toes curl, itâs like he just knew it.
"Like it?" He asked, repeating his previous action, kissing along your neck for added stimulation.
He could feel you on edge of orgasm by the way you pinched his arm but he didnât care about the slight sting. He cared more for the glazed look in your eyes, walls tightening around his finger.
Itâs like he knew exactly when the last push would be, and his pace grew more rough, ready to get you there and finally your body gave way to pleasure.
âPretty,â Jungkook said softly, feeling your release around his hand, letting you ride out your high and pulling his hand back when you were ready. Your breathing was shallow and the sight of your breasts falling and rising with each breath was hypnotizing. When he pulled back, he couldnât stand the constriction of his shorts anymore. Without thinking, he licked your release off his hand before yanking his shorts down along with his usual Calvin Kleins.
Jungkook didnât say he was ready to go further, but you could tell just by the way his cock sprung free from its confines. It was pretty and long, not too think nor skinny and fit his physique perfectly. He stroked himself here and there for some friction but didnât hurry you along. Instead, he let you catch your breath as he watched in awe at the fact that he had you in bed with him.
âCome here,â you motioned for him to come closer with your index finger and sat up, fully naked before him and getting him in the bed with you. Jungkook followed in a trance, kissing you thoughtlessly and nearly biting your lip in surprise when your fingers touched the tip of his dick, feeling the pre-cum that leaked from the slit.
You barely had your hand wrapped around his pretty cock, giving him a small jerk up his length when his fingers circled around your waist to stop you, âNot tonight.â
You tried to read the expression in his eyes but he just kissed you lovingly, âI want to feel you, all of you.â
âWhat a giver,â You said playfully, kissing the tip of his nose and laying back with him following after you. He held your legs apart, lining his cock at your entrance, âCan I? Iâll pull out.â
You gave a nod of your head, looking down as his cock pressed forward, aching to feel the tightness of your wet walls hugging him.
Youâre not sure what came over you then, but the feel of his dick pushing past your entrance made you feel bold. Your leg hooked around his waist, pulling him forward and watching how his jaw went slack. Jungkook looked down at how eagerly you took him and his arms nearly gave out, eyes rolling as he processed the sudden pleasure.
You still needed a moment to adjust to his size and he practically fused himself to your body, trapping you beneath his muscular figure, âFuck.â
His movements were slow at first, thrusting gently to find what felt good and what didnât, running gentle hands over your breasts so he could feel the fullness of them. When he thrusted his hard length in, his thumbs were circled your nipples, pulling his cock out and pinching at them. Something about the leg you had around him drove him wild, feeling your territoriality over him even if there was a chance it meant nothing.
âJungkook,â you moaned softly at a particularly harsh thrust, scratching at his back unintentionally, âFeels good.â
Something was happening inside of him that he couldnât explain. He wanted to say things he shouldnât, things that were too soon to admit and he had to bite his tongue to stop himself. The only other way he could stop himself from sounding like a fool was with his mouth on you and the closest thing to him were your perky nipples.
Jungkook never slowed the steady pace he set fucking you but with the added pleasure to your chest, his tongue circling around your nipple and sucking lightly, had you seeing stars. Youâd nearly forgotten where you were till you looked out the windows, seeing the clear sky and the pretty water making this all feel more surreal.
Jungkook hugged you close, hand gripping your thigh and inching it higher around himself as he fucked you rougher, taking pleasure in bringing you close again and this time around he couldnât bother being as gentle. He wanted to, he swears, but heâs so turned on by you that he couldnât be patient at all. You didnât even seem to mind when his hips slammed into yours, turning you to lay on your side, fucking yourself on his cock with more vigor knowing he needed release too, and let him manhandle you however he wanted. His free hand snuck into your hair, pulling slightly when he dragged you into another kiss and groaned against your lips.
Neither of you had to say anything to know you were both close, and it made you impatient. You moaned at the roughness, letting yourself get lost in the feeling unripe you couldnât take it anymore, once again cumming with little control of yourself. He held you so roughly to his body, not letting you go as you struggled to catch your breath and you knew it was taking everything in him to not let go inside you. Thatâs the only thing that had you pushing away from him, trying to sneak a hand down to touch him but the second you did, his cock spilled thick cum into your hand, creamy and white. You wanted a taste badly.
Jungkook moaned your name quietly, feeling pathetic to cum so easily by your hand but he couldnât hold back anymore. It took him longer to bounce back than you, and when he opened his eyes he caught you pressing a finger to your tongue, taking a small taste that left him shuddering.
âDonât do that,â his voice said, raspy and tired tone.
âYou did it to me,â You said, licking your finger clean, âAnd you made a mess.â
âSorry,â he couldnât help but pout, looking surprisingly cute to you even with his hair a sweaty mess and the afterglow of sex on his naked body, âKiss?â
A grin spreads over his face when you lean in to kiss him, happily kissing you back more gently now.
âWould I sound wimpy if I said I needed a nap?â It pained him to even ask but he was suddenly so tired and relaxed in your arms. It made him feel unmanly to even think to ask but he couldnât help it, he could lay in bed all day with you if it was an option, âWe can worry about breakfast laterâperhaps when itâs consider lunch or an afternoon snack.â
You laughed softly, snuggling into him further, âLet me at least clean up a little and then we can sleep for as long as you want.â
Jungkook smiled happily, letting you leave to the bathroom as he hurriedly tugged the bedding off. He wasnât too worried about the boat, knowing he properly set anchor and the water was calm today. If anything the light rocking of the boat could lull him to sleep if you were in his arms.
âAre you sick of me yet?â Jungkook asked, watching you drift in and out of sleep as he drove away from the shipping dock. It was the evening and the hours spent in the open sun was exhausting, even with how sweet it felt. At least he thinks you might feel that way.
If he were being honest, he could still be with you longer. There hadnât been enough hours in the day for him, âOr do you think we could still get dinner?â
âWe can, but I need a shower, Iâm sticky and sweaty,â You said absentmindedly, catching the way he bit his lip with a smirk that had you smacking his arm, âDonât be gross.â
âI didnât say anything,â He laughed, grinning as he thought about the way you said his name when you were naked in his arms, âBut, I want to take you to my family home. My parents are gone for the weekend and itâs closer than my apartment.â
âAre you hiding your apartment from me?â You asked jokingly.
âNo, but I live with Jimin and I want to be selfish and have you to myself longer so your place is out of the question too,â Jungkook admitted.
âAnd what am I supposed to wear? I didnât really pack clothes,â You looked down at his linen shirt you currently wore, only panties underneath thinking youâd be going home after the eventful day.
âSomething mine, you look good in whatâs mine,â Jungkook said with a wink, âIâll make us something niceâmaybe get something orderedâŠâ
âOh I guess.â
You didnât question the drive away from the houses lining the beach in his pick up truck. You stared out the window and watched the view turn more scenic would hillsides and small rocky edges, more nature-esque.
Songs played quietly that Jungkook would sometimes hum along too with a perfect pitch that had looking over at him from time to time. When he would catch you looking, heâd stop immediately and tighten his hands over the steering wheel.
He was nervous.
His family home was empty and he could go to it whenever he pleased but did he really want to bring you along? Open up another side of himself just for a few more moments alone? Did you mean this much to him?
Swallowing his nerves, he turned down a private road with tall trees and white gravel. It stretched on for a mile before ending at private gates. You sat up, slightly more aware of what was going on when he lowered his window to type in some code, hearing someone speak through an intercom, âWelcome home, sir.â
He could feel your eyes on him and he just smiled, âWash up first?â
âPlease,â You said, looking away, staring straight ahead at the colonial house that appeared in view. It was obscenely large with endless windows and greenery surrounding it making it all the more intimidating.
This is his family home, yours couldnât compare.
Still, you tried not to question it.
Jungkook didnât bother driving back to the private garage, he pulled up to the circular driveway by the fountain of a water nymph and got out of his truck, opening the door for you. It shouldâve dawned on him that something was going to happen. The lights were on when no one should be home.
Still, heâs already brought you this far.
âJungkook?â
His hand stopped at the handle of your door, just barely pulling it open but with little room for you to step out. You stopped moving instantly, watching the way he visibly stiffened, face hardening as he looked off to the distance.
âYouâre here, what a surprise.â
âMom,â he turned around immediately, âI thought you guys werenât home.â
âWell, if you would answer the phone, when I call, you would know your fatherâs trip was canceled,â a women in a tweed Chanel suit and a tight smile stepped down from the entrance, âYouâve brought company?â
As if being summoned, Jungkook looked at you, motioning for you to step out and although you didnât want you, you didâundressed and exhausted. The woman was stunning and classy like youâd never seen, somewhat taken back that she was the mother of the beach boy youâve met.
Not to mention, it was too early to meet anyoneâs parents. It made you sick to your stomach even as you smiled politely, âHello.â
âThis is Y/n,â Jungkook reached for your hand, âWe were just stopping by.â
âWhen you thought no one was home?â She asked, making you look at him. He was grown, clearly, but still scolded and questioned like a child.
Jungkook didnât say anything but you could feel him squeeze your hand when her eyes traveled over your barely dressed figure. He at least had on a t-shirt that was in his truck and his shorts.
âWhy donât the two of you clean up, weâre having dinner on the terrace,â She said looking unimpressed, âIâll have a maid find you something more appropriate.â
âOh, we donât want to boââ
âWe have guests so donât make a scene, I already had to make an excuse for why you wouldnât be here, you canât leave now. Even if you do have sudden company.â
That shut Jungkook up quicker than youâd ever seen. It wasnât that you couldnât catch on to what was happening, but more so you could wrap your mind around the reality of it. You moved almost as robotically as he did, sneaking into the house unsure what was going on aside from doing as told. He took you into his bedroom, pulling you in the bathroom with him and washing up. His entire demeanor changed and you didnât know what to do.
âShould I go? I could probably get Hoseok to get me,â You told him honestly. You werenât upset â not yet. As far as you knew, Jungkook might have a complicated relationship with his parents meeting the person heâs sleeping with, especially considering how recent things are with you. Neither of you are ready to meet the family, itâs just fun summer things. Youâd say the biggest shock was that Jungkook seemed to be wealthy and likes to keep that private but does that make you worried?
âNo, I want you here with me,â Jungkook said, swallowing hard and opening the door to his room, finding something folded on the edge of his bed. He handed it to you without much thought as he got dressed.
It was nothing crazy, just a light colored sundress and you had to dry off quickly so you could join him downstairs. Part of you wanted to call your friends but what would it mean if you did?
âWhat a surprise, brother, and I see youâve finally brought someone new along,â an arrogant voice spoke up from the large dinner table on the terrace. It was a candle lit dinner with six guests aside from the two of you and you immediately reconciled a familiar face.
âHello, sorry for keeping everyone waiting,â Jungkook said stiffly, âThis is Y/n.â
âWeâve met,â Yeaun said when the others looked at you confused. Their greetings were bland and uncaring but you tried not to think too hard on it, âOn the beach, right?â
âYes, I remember,â You tried to smile, looking at Jungkook just as confused as everyone.
âYeaun is a family friend,â Jungkook explained to you.
âAn ex-fiancĂ©e,â His mother said coldly, making him freeze.
Why was she saying this?
âDarling,â an older version of Jungkook with salt and pepper hair said to his wife in warning.
âWeâre on good terms though,â Yeaun smiled tightly, âThings have been changing recently, havenât they?â
She asked you like you would knowâlike you were the reason for it but you were too stuck on what she was to care.
Ex-what?
âSo, are you still going with the firm?â A woman sitting next to his brother said to him. That made his brother laugh, âHeâs still playing around Jinâs auto shop.â
âIs everyone already eating? What about us?â Jungkook looked at you suddenly, âShould we get served?â
The firm? What firm? What fiancée? What was going on?
âY/n, what about you? Are you new in town? Who are your parents?â The dad asked, making all heads turn toward you, a member of who you assumed was house staff, began to serve you and Jungkook dinner.
âDad,â Jungkook tried to say but he didnât get very far.
âIâm just here for the summer, Iâm from the city,â You told him with a smile.
âHowâd you meet?â Jungkookâs mother asked.
âOn the beach,â You told her plainly. She didnât say anything in response but you could feel the way her eyes narrowed at you like she was trying to read you. You werenât lying or anything but it felt like she didnât believe you. Under the table, Jungkookâs hand touched your thigh but in all honesty you didnât even want him to touch you. Itâs not anything serious, you were just confused and uncomfortable in this situation. He shouldâve just taken you home or let you call Hoseok.
âA city girl, huh? You must have a big job, right? What do you do?â His brother asked.
âIâm in between work right now,â You said honestly, just as you had told Jungkook who seemed to be open to that idea and understood why. Sometimes, doing the same routine in a career you didnât have passion anymore left you drained and you needed a change of pace. You explained this to him and he made it all feel okay so why were you being looked at strangely?
âSo wasting your time over here is what you want to be doing?â His mom asked.
Jungkook took a deep breath, wanting to speak up but unsure how to do so. He obviously hasnât told you anything but his relationship with his family is complicated. The added guests made it all the worse. Has he always been such a coward?
âThatâs what it seems like,â You said bitterly, looking over at Jungkook with a cold expression.
You donât remember much of the rest of dinner, only that you hated every second of it and how you just wanted to go home. You checked out of all conversations after a while and watched the tension between them with little interest. What youâve learned is that Jungkook is good at keeping things from others even when he begs to know more himself.
The irony, it was annoying. By the end of dinner, you didnât care to know what any of them had to say, much less Yeaun who everyone continued to remind you was his ex that they all loved dearly. They were saying it for a reason, like if you wanted to take her place and be with Jungkook who belonged to a group of people who wonât let outsiders in.
âWell at least sheâs pretty,â you remember being told.
âIâm sorry,â was the first thing Jungkook said after dinner but you didnât bother to acknowledge him. Instead, you led the way to his truck so he could take you home.
The car ride was so eerily silent that it felt deafening. He tried and tried to talk to you but you just ignored him, not caring at all for whatever might come out of his mouth and he canât really blame you.
âYou lied to me,â You said finally, staring holes into his dashboard.
âI didnât mean to,â Jungkook admitted, âEverything Iâve said to you is true.â
You scoffed, rolling your eyes and looking out the dark window, âJust take me home.â
âY/n,â Jungkook reached across the middle console for your hand but you crossed your arms over your chest and shifted away from him even more, âIâm sorry, we shouldâve just gone somewhere elââ
âLook, it was never going to work out anyway so just take me home and we can both go on with our lives because clearly weâre nothing alike at all,â You said bitterly, âI was just dumb enough to believe we are. Itâs been a long day.â
He wanted to argue but for the first time since heâs met you, heâs left silent. Heâs a coward, heâs aware of that now and it felt sickening to realize it finally. Heâs always been the type to do what heâs told, follow the plan his parents have set out for him and this is the first time heâs realizing how much he hates it.
When the truck pulled up to the front of your house, he began to unbuckle his belt, quietly saying, âIâll walk you to the dââ
The car door slammed shut in the middle of his words and although he knew it was better for him to give you space, he just couldnât. He couldnât let you walk off on him without trying to really hear him outâjust let him get his thoughts together. As pathetic as it sounds, Jungkook feels like a kid again. He feels anxious to be ignored or scolded.
Without a care for gentleness, he swung his side door open to the large truck and got down to follow after you, âIâm sorry, okay? I didnât realize they would be home and if I did I wouldnât have invited you over. I just wanted to spend more time with you.â
âThatâs not the problem, Jungkook,â you said back to him, âThe problem is that youâre so secretive about everything and fine, whatever, you donât have to tell me but donât act like you want to know anything about me then if I canât expect the same.â
You released a sigh at his silence, turning away, âGo home.â
Your front door slammed in his face shutting him out and he could see people staring through the window; probably overhearing everything and he wanted to disappear. When had things gotten so complicated for him?
He missed the days when he didnât have anything to worry about but now that heâs starting to see the people around him more clearly, heâs realizing he doesnât like it at all.
â§
It took you days to think about Jungkook again, mostly because you wanted to ignore him and he was making it easy for you. He has only messaged and called a couple times before he got the hint that you donât want to talk to him and gave up.
You canât tell if you preferred that or wished he kept trying but you had to move on. The two of you werenât dating, you hooked up on a boat before realizing his family are pretentious assholes and wanted nothing to do with him now.
You know heâs not his family but at the same time these are people he surrounds himself with and if he was attracted to someone like Yeaun, there was no way he was into you too. You barely know her but you know enough to see that youâre nothing alike.
âWhat are you looking at?â Hoseok asked, looming over your shoulder.
âApartments, I still canât find anything good, I think I need to go home for a few days and do some in-person tours,â You told him with a sigh, scrolling through listings, sitting alone in the beach themed living room that looked fresh out of a cape cod magazine.
âItâs not a quick commute,â He said, âBesides, I already said you can stay with me till we find you a place, thereâs no rush.â
âI know, but thereâs nothing better to do,â You said with a shrug.
âItâs called avoiding,â Hyeri said, sitting on the edge of the couch, âSo Y/nâs probably not gonna come back if she leaves now. Youâre mad at Jungkook.â
âNo, Iâm not,â you rolled your eyes, âThatâs over and I havenât done anything but laze around all day. I need to get my shit together.â
You just want to go home.
âWhatâs up with you? Youâve looked mad all day,â Jimin pointed out as he mindlessly dug his feet into the sand. Heâs dragged Jungkook out after days of not seeing him but his friend couldnât care less about the beach or hanging out with him. He actually didn't want to hang out with anyone.
âIs it the thing from the other night?â Jimin asked like it was so simple, âYeaun was talking about it, so youâve introduced your new girl to the family and it didnât go so well?â
âJimin.â
âYeah?â
âAre you really my friend?â Jungkook asked, sitting at the bottom of one of the net posts, squinting up at the sun.
âAre you kidding? Iâve been around since you were in diapers, youâre like a brother to me,â Jimin said with a laugh, âI just donât agree with some of the decisions you make.â
âLike?â He pressed for more.
âI donât know, I just think you have a lot going for you and lately youâve been acting like you donât,â Jimin said, shrugging, âYou passed the Bar Exam a while ago and instead of going to your dadâs firm youâre wasting time at Jinâs. You donât answer the phone when your family calls and you ignore your friends forâŠâ
âSay it.â
âFor some chick you donât know,â Jimin scoffed, âI donât get it. Itâs always been you and I, Chaehi and Yeaun. Always. Since we were kids and suddenly you break it off with one of the only girls whoâs been here for you and find someone new to entertain yourself with. Itâs weird.â
âAsshole,â Jungkook rolled his eyes, kicking off the ground and leaving his friend behind. He wasnât sure where he was going but he just wanted to be alone.
Were you really just some girl? Is that what everyone thought? Yes, things had been incredibly easy with you but did that mean you werenât anything more than a fling? As dramatic as it sounds, every interaction with you has been probably the best heâs ever had.
Youâre funny, pretty, smart, and so much more than he ever imagined. You pulled him in and pushed him away in the best way possible. Of course itâs been strange getting rejected but you do it in a way that tells him to keep going. You were always there to listen to his obnoxious flirting and when he did decide to tell you anything about himself, you didnât judge.
Heâs so stupid for not doing the same. He wanted you to open up to him because he wanted to get closer to you but he didnât allow himself to do it too. It was unfair so he understands why youâre mad but he canât stand it.
He wants to call you but would you want to listen?
Jungkook found himself walking toward the boardwalk hoping the bustling energy from midday was enough to distract him. He thinks you remind him of something different, being somewhere different where he didnât have to worry so much about what he did or who he was with. Jiminâs right that lately Jungkook hasnât been doing anything to be apart of his familyâs plans for him. Heâs kind of been trying to live in the moment and clearly that wasnât so bad. Thatâs how he met you and besides, itâs not like he hasnât been thinking about his future. He just doesnât see it here in this small town where everyone knows his name. He sees himself somewhere far in the city where he could just blend in with everyone else and do what he wants to do, be with who he wants to. Itâs you, itâs seriously you.
Youâve opened up his eyes a little and he hates that his lack of honesty has pushed you away. He canât even blame it on the uncomfortable dinner because if he wasnât such a coward, he wouldâve done more. He canât deny that thereâs something up with him and he has no doubt in his mind that you have something to do with it. Barely knowing you has done so much more for him than the people heâs known all his life.
Your best friends wanted you to forget about your plans on leaving, knowing you too well to believe you would come back. Youâre not the type to do so. If you set your mind on leaving, even for a short time, you wouldnât come back especially knowing you could run into Jungkook whenever. Maybe you were a coward too because all you ever wanted to do was run away when things get complicated and the last thing you had wanted was for this trip to get that way too.
They dragged you out of the house for a late lunch that you werenât even hungry for and as a way to distract you but it did the complete opposite of that. Instead, you were brought to that restaurant you came to with Jungkook and the same server who youâve seen now talk with a girl Yeaun was always around. They were friends and it shouldâve been the first sign that you would never get him. You were never part of the plan around here, you were a step back to everyone involved with him and it made you bitter.
Howâd you catch the attention of someone so unavailable?
âCome on, I havenât bought a single thing here, Iâve been too busy working on my tan,â Hyeri said, pulling you along behind her to a clothing stand of sundresses, âWeâve got a few more weeks here, I think itâs time I fit the vibe, right?â
âYeah,â You told her, looking through the rack of dresses absentmindedly. You wandered away just a little, to a table filled with jewelry and ran your fingers over certain metals and gems. You werenât thinking much on what was going on around you, too distracted choosing between gold and silver to notice the person standing yards away looking stunned.
For the first time in over a week, Jungkook has found you again, on the beach, looking as breathtaking as usual. After all youâve been avoiding him, he canât help but hesitate. Does he approach you or not?
âY/n?â
You looked up, brows furrowed slightly at who stood in front of you, âYeaun.â
âHey! How good to see you,â She smiled her usual tight smile that never quite reached her eyes. Up close you could see just how perfect she must seem to everyone from her height to her figure and tone of voice. She usually wore gold accessories and bikini tops or dresses. She was your perfect âGirl Next Doorâ but if you paid enough attention to some of the things she said, youâd see how backhanded it all seemed.
âIt was such a surprise to see you the other night. I guess none of us knew you were with Jungkook,â Yeaun said it so casually even if you could tell she was prying, âWhere is he by the way?â
âWhy donât you ask his mother? The two of you seem close,â You tried not to sound bitter but youâre sure your body language gave away that you were. You searched for Hyeri who was looking at dresses on herself in the mirror and Hoseok left to get snow cones so once again, you were alone in her presence.
âYeah, sorry about that, our parents go way back,â Yeaun said with a wave of her hand, âItâs a small town, yâknow. Everyone knew we were high school sweethearts and when we got engaged everyone was so excited. You can imagine their surprise when we broke it offâsorry, you probably donât want to hear about this again. Iâm sure Jungkook has said enough.â
âIt might sound strange but he doesnât bring you up at all,â You told her, failing to say how you havenât talked to him, âI guess he got over it a long time before anyone else did.â
âI guess so,â her stupid smile once again, âI like you, youâre good for him and Iâm sorry if his family seemed closed off. Theyâre kind of exclusive with who they bring around. They donât want just anyone around their sons. Iâm sure you can see why, Jungkook is perfect, right? A lawyer in the making, athletic, kindâŠâ
âSilver or gold?â You asked, holding up two different sets of earrings. She blinked in surprise, choosing one and trying to carry on, âWhat I mean is, heâs the whole package so everyone wants him but he also has a lot of responsibilities. If someone isnât able to stand behind them all and support him⊠maybe theyâre not the right fitâespecially if they wonât stick around.â
You didnât say anything for a moment, setting the earrings back down and smiling, amused by her audacity, âWho broke it off with who?â
âIt was mutual.â
âDoesnât sound like it was,â You said with a smile, beginning to walk away from her, âBut donât worry, I donât usually like competing for someoneâs attention. I guess I didnât realize you did, so good luck.â
âMeaning?â Her eyes narrowed.
âMeaning, youâre wasting your breath talking to me because I donât care what you have to say,â You said sweetly, âBut it was so nice seeing you again, hopefully next time weâll have something new to talk about.â
With that, you left her behind, nearly walking past Hyeri on the way, âWhere you going?â
âMy phoneâs dying, Iâm going the house,â you told her quickly, continuing to leave before anyone else could run into you.
âWhatâd you say to Y/n?â Jungkook asked, pushing his way through the crowds of people, getting to the stand too late and watching you walk away.
âNothing,â Yeaun raised her hands in feigned surrender, âI was just catching up. Why so worried?â
âWhereâs she going?â Jungkook asked Hyeri, ignoring Yeaun who called for him.
âTo the house?â Hyeri said, confused by whatever she missed but she couldnât even ask when Jungkook practically ran after you.
You cut through the beach instead of taking the long route down the street. You walked farther and farther away from him but he never stopped.
âY/n! Can we talk?â He asks, catching you by surprise but you didnât even act like it. You merely threw him a glance before walking faster.
âIâm kind of in a hurry,â You lied, stepping over the grassy parts in the white sand where you could see more residential properties.
âLook, Iâm sorry. I really am, I shouldâve been more up front from the beginning but I swear I didnât keep things from you to hurt you,â Jungkook said, not stopping his pace even when he can see your house in the distance.
âItâs fine, Iâm over it,â You told him, not turning back again as you looked up at the back deck of your house. You still walked closer to down the shore than the trail but you would get there soon.
âBut Iâm not, I⊠canât stand the thought of you being done with me,â Jungkook said honestly, âSince Iâve met you all I can do is think about you and Iâm kicking myself over letting you find things out in a hard way. I donât like the way you were talked to and I shouldâve said more but I didnât and I regret it so much.â
âJungkook, I donât care,â you groaned, whipping around to face him, âI donât care that you kept things from me. I donât care that thereâs something seriously wrong with your family or your ex fiancĂ©e. I donât care if everyone thinks Iâm not good enough for you and do you want to know why? Because itâs the summer and Iâm not from here and it was fun to fool around in the moment but itâs too complicated now. I don't want anything to do with it. Are you getting it now? I want to go home and forget all about this.â
âYou want to leave?â He asked, getting closer and closer, âAnd what happens then? We just never see each other again because I didnât mean anything to you?â
âI guess if thatâs how youâre seeing itââ
âBullshit,â He scoffed, âI donât care how long weâve known each other or not, you want me just as much as I want you but youâre letting everything else get in the way. Iâm sorry, I donât know what else I can say or do to express that.â
âIâm leaving,â You argued, stepping away, âIâm going back to my normal life and you can go back to yours. Stop making this a bigger deal than it was.â
âWhat if I donât want to? What if I think youâre the best thing to happen to me in a while and the thought of you just leaving doesnât sit right with me? What if I say I donât want this to just be a summer thing and I will follow you wherever you go if it means I get to talk to you more?â Jungkook kept going.
âOh my god, Jungkook. Open your eyes! Join the real world, please!â You groaned, too frustrated to bother getting away, âWe still donât know much about each other, clearly. You live in this perfect little bubble with people who care about you and have plans for you. Why canât you see that? Why are you wanting to throw that away for someone you barely know?â
âIâm not mad, I promise,â You tried to say, âOur lives are just too different and Iâm ready to go back to mineââ
Your words were cut off by the rough pull into his arms. Jungkookâs touch was tender yet forceful, dragging your face toward his until your lips clashed messily and you kissed him back. Like a fool, you kissed him too despite everything you were saying.
It made your heart race, practically feeling his want for you and unable to help yourself from succumbing to it.
He canât remember how long the kiss was, but long enough for his chest to grow heavy with a need to breathe that he had to pull away. His forehead rested against yours, âIf you still want to leave⊠okay. I canât make you stay but I really want you to, Y/n.â
You didnât say anything, knowing you did want to leave. At this point it was more for yourself. No matter how harsh they were, they were right. You needed to get your act together and stop avoiding the problems in your life and that meant you needed to go home.
âAnd I promise that Iâm going to see you again whether it be here or somewhere else,â Jungkook said.
FOUR WEEKS LATER
Jungkook was enamored by city life, heâs grown to learn about himself. Something about the tall skyscrapers and bustling traffic excited him like no other while other people hated them. Of course he missed the beach, surfing, volleyball, his friends⊠but this was for himself. He needed to do something on his own even if it meant doing something unimaginable but it was for the better.
He misses working with cars but he knows better. He put all that work into law school just so he could avoid it and do something else and he needed that to stop. Even if he didnât work in his fatherâs firm, that didnât mean he couldnât get his foot in the door somewhere else.
After you left and all his distractions were gone, he was able to focus more on what he wanted to do. He got on his laptop to look at internships at other law firms and one day, in his endless searching, he found a small office to work in. It was in the city and it didnât take him long to pack up his things and go to it. It started problemsâof courseâ but it didnât stop him, especially knowing you were somewhere here too.
Youâve barely talked since you moved back but he still misses you. He missed you and him on the beach or sailing in the sea. He misses making you laugh or roll your eyes and he wonders how youâre doing. He kept in touch with Hoseok and Hyeri after you left and when they followed suit at the end of vacation, he wanted to ask them about you but he knew better. He knows you werenât just a fling but maybe one day youâll come back and give it another shot.
âIced Americano?â
âI didnât order one,â Jungkook said as he sat alone at a table in a nice cafe. He didnât look up until the cup was set down in front of him and when he was ready to tell the barista it wasnât for him, he froze.
âI know, you donât really give me âCoffee Drinkerâ vibes but I figured it was worth a shot,â You sat down across from him.
âAre you stalking me?â He asked, dumbfounded and confused but more excited than anything. He couldnât believe you were here, at the same place as him by chance.
âWell, I was going to ask the same, this is my usual stop before work and Iâve never seen you here before,â You said, continuing the conversation with him like it never ended.
Jungkook couldnât help but smile, âWell, you see, Iâm new to town and trying new places since this is on my way to work.â
âIs it?â You asked, âYou must live around here.â
âAs it turns out I do,â Jungkook cleared his throat, âItâs a recent move but one I donât regret.â
âHow are you?â You asked with a shy smile and flushed cheeks, the autumn air beginning to take over.
âBetter nowâafter this coffee I mean,â he teased, taking a sip and scrunching his face in disgust.
You bit your lip in thought, âActually um, itâs good Iâve run into you. I think thereâs some things we should talk about but I have to get to work soon.â
âWell I still have your number, and we can always catch up over dinner?â
âYeah, Iâd like that,â You smiled nervously, standing up, âTonight?â
That made his heart race, âItâs a date.â
::.
holy shit that took forever for me to update
idk how I feel about this but also after a while I think too hard on my work and canât look at it anymore so please lmk when you think
permanent taglist
most of u are new but I tried to include some of my old, active members of the taglist and if I forgot about u pls lmk <3
permanent taglist: @notmyfaultbutours @rerefundslocals @fandems @guvgguk @kimyishin @libra04 @saweetspoiled @babycandy111 @jeonninja @skzthinker @lilliankoo @lesoleile @burnahtsw @kooloveys @ku-ku @chaelvrx @whoa-jo @sunnikthv @kochycooky @acielelyseen @giselleswifeee @ilikeitlikethatt @bangmechanpls @lvr2seok @badbyeyoongi @artmsmaid @xyahrinx @angeleen777 @jooniesxbby @maryy1300 @annabtsangels @hyunjinswifeee @bangtans-momma @butterymin @kaiparkerwifes @junggukjeonfreakinwife @tridha345 @ily4jknity @ivygguk @ryuzakiswife-blog @futuristicenemychaos @honeybunnykoo @eunhee-jk @aindrila @cherrymoonlightt @parkinglot-nights @llallaaa @crooked-haven @butterflykpop @sakuragongju @ackward-maknae @investedreader @junggukjeonfreakinwife

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch âą No registration required âą HD streaming
Fate
Pairings: Yoongi Ă y/n
Genre/tags: Arranged marriage
Warning: đđđ mention of blood/violence/drugs/trafficing, trauma, mention of killing, kidnapping, gun, mention of food/eating/weight, cursing, sensual touching, making out smoking, smut (but not this chapter)
~~~~[lmk if i miss anything]
Words: 5.2k
Disclaimer:
- this story is just made up
- english is not my first language, please be nice đ
Note:
Part 1 - Prisoner
Part 2 - Escape
Part 3 - Twilight
Part 4 - Fate
A/N: again... im really sorry for being a slow writer/update for this mini seriesđđ» i can't help it. đ I do get msgs asking for updates & i feel bad... so sorry đ„č I try my best to have time to get into the story/characters whenever i have free time. I work full time and have a 2nd job too so it takes all my energy. I'm really... really sorry.đ
But yeaah, thank you for everyone liking my yoongi fanfic. đ€đ«¶đ» thank you for the patienceđ
I hope this chapter is okay â„ïž
****
(Prologue/Flashback)
"Sshh..." she covers your mouth for you to stay quiet and not make any noise. She reminds you constantly to keep it together or else they will find you. "Just a little bit more, Yoongi." She whispers. "Calm down..."
You try your best to do what she says because you want you guys to survive this. To escape. However you are a kid and you are terrified. And you can't stop yourself from shaking like a twig. Also you are rapidly breathing through your nose. Tears even start to fill your eyes as you look into her eyes.
"You'll be fine..." she says to you. "Noona, will protect you."
"I'm scared..." You whisper grabbing onto her long braided hair.
You two are a few inches apart. If she could only embrace you, she will. However there are metal bars between you two and she is.... injured.
"Me too." She wants to cry to as she must be as scared as you or maybe, more. But since she's the eldest between the two of you she have to be brave for you. "Just go to sleep... I promise... the moment you wake up...when the sun is shining after the storm tonight... we'll be safe... we'll already be at home..."
"P-promise?"
She tries her best to not break down because she knows that she's promising something that's very unrealistic in your situation right now. Both of you are held captives, kidnapped and waiting to be saved.
"I promise." She sniffs "Just hold onto this for now..." she meant her hair and then reaches her hand to you slowly even it's causing too much pain for her. "Go to sleep... Noona will be right here..." the tip of her fingers barely touched your cheek. "I will protect you..." she adds
- - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -
[Present]
The silence between you two is very deafening. Even the staffs at the mansion notices how both of you are very distant to each other.
Odd right? They should be used to this situation since Yoongi is the silent type or the one who does not talk that much especially to you.
However for you, maybe this is out of character as every one is not used to you being like this. Well THIS silent anyway.
You usually talk and greet them or make small talks with them or Yoongi even if it's just a random question to make him just...talk. You do anything to make him speak to you. You make small efforts to chase his attention just to get him look back at you per say. Like a dog.
But now, since he made sure to leave you the moment you got vulnerable with him during sex and mentioned a feeling you have, which in the first place you had no idea you have, really hurt you this time. Big time. It is a rejection that you never thought would bother you this much.
"You two are awfully quiet." Mrs. Min says as soon as she puts down her cup of coffee on the table. "You two are both quiet originally... I know... but..." she looks at you and Yoongi back and forth twice. "Did you guys had a fight?"
No one answers.
"Guessing...silence means yes?" Mrs. Min looks at us again, hoping someone will speak up. "What did you do?" She asks Yoongi.
But he didn't open his mouth to speak. He just continued on chewing on his breakfast while his eyes are glued to you.
He has been eyeing you since the two of you left the mansion. He have been silently watching you move along, react and walk from your back. You don't notice it as you are trying to achieve to ignore him completely today. And so far, you are a gold medalist at it. You don't even bat an eye on him.
"Fine... not gonna ask anymore questions..." Mrs. Min gives up. "Anyways, after this lunch... I'll have a meeting with Hannah."
Yoongi flinches, finally reacting and gets interested to whatever his mother is saying. "What for?"
"About the private resort project that she is building... she wants my opinion about what brands to use for the decorations. She have a final lists of candidates of brands and she wants to know my say to it."
"Really...."
"Yes... and as soon as it opens... she says you two can go there... and celebrate... as her gift. Since she missed going to your wedding."
"Celebrate?" You finally spoke after how many years. Even Yoongi whip his head to look at you.
"Yes dear," Mrs. Min smiles so brightly and holds your hand. "You're 2nd anniversary... next month... right?"
"Ah, yes... right." You try to smile it away. But deep inside, you are not looking forward to it.
Why would you? Last year Yoongi didn't even greeted you Happy Anniversary. He probably didn't care back then so why would he care now and celebrate this year? This marriage is nothing to him.
"Is she coming here?" Yoongi asks his mother, changing back the subject to Hannah
"No... I am meeting her at her office."
You are holding on for dear life on your gold medal for 'Ignoring my husband award'. You are so curious to look at him. To see his beautiful face, how he reacts when they talk about her. Hannah. The girl you saw more than a year ago. The girl you saw on the driveway, talking to your husband while she hooked her arms on his'. The girl that Yoongi seems interested about. The girl he seems to.... like.
"How about you guys? What are your plans today after our brunch?" Mrs. Min asks
"Hmm.." he sighs heavily and then takes his phone from the table. "Probably fuck my wife " Yoongi answers nonchalantly making you and Mrs. Min almost choke on nothing. That sentence made you even look at him with wide eyes and red cheeks.
"Omo..." Mrs. Min is too stunned to even comprehend what she just heard. "Well... okay... too much information but..." she then takes a sip of her coffee. "You do you."
"I'm sorry..." you apologize to your mother-in-law.
You are embarassed. This topic should be a private matter. Everyone in the mansion already seem to have the idea what you two do on a regular basis but you do hope that outside, no one has to know.
It's not that you are embarassed of having a sex life. It's normal. Yes. But to have to talk about it to his parents, oh dear god, no.
"Why are you apologizing?" Yoongi's face looks so damn serious. "We are husband and wife right?"
You scowl at Him. You don't like how he acts or portrays like sex is just a hobby for him and it's nothing to be embarassed about. Especially in front of his mother while you are present. He really does not treat you like you have any feelings. He is evil.
"Okay... children...children... don't fight about this... it's okay. You already have issues before we got here so... it's fine." Mrs. Min tries to sooth the situation up.
She's so nice to try. Though she does not know the real reason why there is a huge distance between you two today. It's not that simple. You don't even know if she knows how his son treats you.
***
"Sir." Mr. Kim bows as both Yoongi and you arrives at the driveway, about to leave Mrs. Min's property.
"Get in." He orders you
You glare at him then roll your eyes away. You are in no mood now. You have scowled at him earlier already so why not do it more now that he is irritating you.
"Hold on..." he suddenly grabs you by the arm, stopping you from getting in the car. "Did you just fucking roll your eyes at me?" He scoffs
You try your best to pull your arms from his grip but he is stronger than you. "Let me go." You grunt
"What are you doing?" He asks, "You've been.... acting up lately..."
"I don't know...what you're talking about..." you finally freed yourself from his grip.
"Don't act innocent on me... I know you."
"Know me?" You snap. "How? We barely talked these past two years... You only look for me when you want something done and someone to fuck...besides that, I am nothing to you. So how the fuck will you know me?"
Finally! You've said something. However you can't lie to yourself how terrified you are right now. Your legs are shaking. You have never risen your voice like this before. Not with him. Plus Yoongi is so freaking silent. There was no reaction from him not like Mr. Kim who just coughed because of the sudden tension.
Is he in shock? He must be surprised to hear you speak out after all this time. He had never heard you talk like this before. You can't even read his expression. He is just looking down at you, straight on.
"Ahm... Sir... Miss... I'll leave you two... alone." Mr. Kim finally broke the awkward silence. "Just message me if... we're going home."
You glance at him and bow. Also giving an apologetic look since the situation got a bit serious.
And as soon as Mr. Kim is gone from our sight, Yoongi takes a step forward closer to you, making you back up and your behind bumping on the car. "Is that... what you think?"
You glare up at him. "Yes."
"You think... I don't know you?"
"Yes."
He chuckles. "I know you more than you know..."
You frown. "You only see me when you are horny... you don't even talk to me unless to I ask you... unless you tell me what to do and what not to do... so, how would you know anything about me...?"
He scrunches his face. He looks irritated "I see you more than you think." He mumbles. And then he took a step back and looks at you and watch you tremble,"Do you regret it?" He asks
"W-what? Regret what?"
"The sex... do you regret it?"
"W-what? What do you mean...?"
He then puts both his hands on the car, trapping you between. "Just answer the question... do you hate and regret the sex?"
You look away. "No...."
"Do you want us to stop fucking?"
You sigh heavily. "Why are you focusing on the sex?!?" Your brows are furrowed. You are really showing your frustration. "It's not about the sex, Yoongi! There is nothing wrong with the sex... what I just want is... I just..." you look back at his face and you see an empty expression from him. Does he not get what you are saying or is he ignoring the other parts of what you told him. That the only thing he thinks about is your sex life. "Never mind..." you lower your gaze. "It's not like my opinion matter..."
"Y/N..." Yoongi begins. You look back st him waiting for whatever he's about to say. You think he was about to response to you or maybe say what is on his mind as well. (Maybe.) However, both of you got suddenly distracted by the honk of a black sedan car entering the property.
You have seen that car before. It is familiar. And then when it stops and someone steps out of the car...
"Yoongi?" The woman that came out of the passenger seat, is Hannah. "What are you doing here?"
She is smiling ear to ear. Her smile is as bright as her tear drop pear earrings that is perfectly shown under her tucked bob hair. She's... so pretty.
"Oh... Hi..." she waves at you when she finally notices you
"Hi." You try to smile as brightly as you can.
"You must be Yoongi's beautiful wife." She is sweet. She looks like a friendly and easy going person. "I'm Hannah by the way... I'm Yoongi's friend since we're... toddlers..."
"Nice to meet you." You bow
"What are you doing here? Mother said..."
"Ah... yes... we we're supposed to meet at my office but I just came from another meeting and since we will pass by the house I decided to just meet her now..." she explains
"She must be in her room now.. preparing to meet you."
"Oh. I see... well, I guess I'll just surprise her." She grins. "Are you guys leaving?"
"Yeah... we just had brunch with her..."
Fuck. What is going on?
Just a second ago, you're having a serious confrontation with your husband. You guys are about to talk about the situation between you two. Yes, it may not be the ideal 'talk' but it is a start. But then, here you are. Hannah arrived and stole his full attention. Literally, she have all his eyes and ears. You suddenly became a shadow.
Then you are also hearing Yoongi converse. You are hearing how is he when he's not alone with you. You are hearing a side of him that you are not familiar with. 'Fuck Y/N, stop it.' You say yourself
Maybe, you just need to stop. Just stop complaining about his attention and him not liking you. Maybe he is not the problem. Maybe.. it's you? They forced him to marry and got stucked with you. YOU are the problem. You are NOT the person he wanted to marry. You just got selected just because.
You are the problem. As always. Like what everybody says to you.
"I'll just email you my thoughts after..." Hannah says
"Why not discuss it now?" Yoongi suggests
"Hmm...but you're about to leave..." she glances at you
"It's okay." Yoongi then pulls out his phone and messages someone. "I asked Mr. Kim to come... wait for him... I'll be quick." He says to you
You look at him for a second before you turn your back on him. "Sure." You sound lifeless. You sounded like you've given up already.
"Y-yoongi... you're going to make her wait?" She whispers to him but you care definitely hear it
"Let's make it quick. I don't want to work over the weekend."
He's more worried of working on the weekend but not making you stay and wait all alone.
They start to walk away. You could see their reflection through the windows of the car.
They left you alone.
He left you alone.
Then as you are standing there, waiting for Mr. Kim to come back, you slightly bend over your torso, holding onto the yourself as soon as you felt a little uncomfortable feeling on your lower abdomen. It's not painful but it is a bit of discomfort.
"Fuck..." you hiss under your breathe.
You should be careful now. Atleast until it's fully confirmed. Yes, you are pregnant. Well, that's what the PT told you a few days ago.
You took the test, in your bathroom, scared and shaking like a twig. You have never felt this terrified in your life. Ever. And the freaking 3mins of waiting felt like forever whilst you are in there, sitting on the floor.
But yeah, after the torture of waiting, the test did show two lines. It was a faint but it is positive. And during that moment, your world suddenly stopped spinning. You had to gather your thoughts and emotion within the span of 30mins that you have. (Because your maid will enter your bathroom to help you get ready after 30mins). That was one other toture you had to endure. And to add more spice on this never ending problem is that you were all ALONE. You had no one to hold hands or hug for moral support.
You are, all by yourself.
After testing, you did processed the result in your mind and managed to get back right to reality and decide by yourself to be... okay. To take it as another good day. Because this is not something bad. It is a miracle. It's a life.
Though, you can't lie. It was a whirlwind of emotion. And you don't know what to feel yet about it. You are not even sure if you are able to share it with anyone, even Yoongi since you still need to see a doctor to really confirm it.
Confirmation.
You fucking need that final 'yes you are pregnant'. Because your further decisions in life will revovle around that one thing. Decisions that might affect this marriage and basically affect your whole life. So, you really have to find a way to get a doctor's appointment in secret. For now...
"Miss?" Mr. Kim arrives and sees you slouching, "Is everything alright?"
You turn around, stands up straight and smile. "Yes..."
"Are you hurt?" He asks
"I'm fine... but I just think... my stomach feels heavy a bit from eating... I did ate quite a bit." You lie.
"Okay, let me bring you home quick so you could rest." He says
"Thank you."
****
[Yoongi's side]
Yoongi can't sleep. He got home earlier just an hour after Y/N got home. He asked the maids to call her, to have dinner with him, but unfortunately Y/N was already fast asleep.
He waited for her to wake up from what he thinks is just a quick nap. But whenever he asks the maid if she's up, they just shake their head and say sorry.
They fought. He thinks. It felt like they fought. It's his first time hearing her talk to him like that. She have been always timid and her patience with him is very long. However, she finally have had it.
How can you make your wife, who is clearly showing you that she's falling in love with you, start to hate you?
Well, Yoongi knows what he did and is doing to her. He is very controlling, cold and distant. And these are the traits that can't be part of your life especially of you are married. However, this is how he is. As a child no, but ever since the incident happen fifteen years ago, the trauma and the life he had to put through made him, This.
Outsiders might call him as the devil or the punisher of the Min Family because of all the work he is doing inside the office and outside. He is a fighter and his hands are always covered with blood. Though what he's doing is not a crime. The Min's business is not illegal. They control everything that they can do end everything that is illegal in the most legal way possible. If that makes sense.
They were just a business before. A typical rich family. But yeah, since what had happened to them years ago, they changed their rules and how they do it now.
And that's why Yoongi have this cold exterior. He needs to show to everyone who's watching him that he can't falter. That no one could try to even break him like how those monsters break his father. How those monster took them and made them hostages.
10 million. That's all it takes, for some uneducated humans do the most horrendous thing in this world. To hurt and kill an innocent child. A 16yrs old girl and a 14yr old boy.
Their parents were willing to give the money and even more, just for them to surrender their children. However, the fear in them when they know that the children saw their faces, made them decide to end it all.
Yuna, his older sister, sacrificed her life to save Yoongi. She is one brave young lady. She managed to push his brother just in time to fall on the edge, to roll down small hill and get away through the woods. She got shot and died on the spot. Yoongi saw everything but didn't had the time to grieve then and there because he had to survive yet. To run.
It took two more days before he was found. How he survived? No one knows. But since that day, the happy and cheerful little boy grew up and became the cold Yoongi everyone knows now.
He knows that what he have been through is not an excuse to treat his wife so coldy like this. She was only forced the marry him. She didn't even know him. Which is his fault as well because he didn't allow her to enter his bubble. Up to now...
However, through all the times that he have been with her little by little, as per his therapist's words, 'You are slowly breaking.' She said.
She said that before, whenever she asks him about his wife. He is usually nonchalant or indifferent. Like he's just talking about someone he randomly met. But then one day, the therapists said, she saw a glimpse of change in his eyes the moment she asks about his wife. His expression is the same but his eyes started to shift like he's thinking about it more before he speaks.
'You care. You just don't know how to show it' she said to him.
At first, When Yoongi heard that from his therapist, he got worried. Not because He is starting to have this feeling for his wife. No. His wife is never and will never be a bad thing that happened to his life. He is worried because, what if he breaks his cold exterious and somewhere out there in the world takes advantage of it and what happened years ago will happen again?
That is his only concern. That is why, he added more men. That's why Y/N can't leavr a house alone. That's why he always tracks her phone wherever she is. That's why he can't sleep without know if she is fine or not.
If only... he never had these issues, these traumas from the past, maybe... it's easier.
"Please... don't quit on me..." he says out loud as he closes his eyes, imagining the smiling face of his wife. "Don't... leave me..." he mutters
****
After what it seems like a very, very long day for you you're finally home. You are so tired that the first thing you did after getting changed is sleep. It feels like this is the longest you've slept in like forever.
You keep turning and waking up every now and then but your body kept forcing you to not wake up. It's like its telling you that you needed this. After all of the worrying you have been having these past few days. This sleep is for you.
But then maybe after hour five of sleeping, you felt something cold touch your skin. It didn't sting. It oddly felt good.
Slowly opening your eyes, you see a blurred figure in front of you. He's so close that you could actually smell his scent. The smell of baby powder.
"Yoongi?" You ask softly as your eyes slowly adjusted to the little light of your lamp shade. But no one answered back. You then rub your eyes to wake yourself up a bit more. Just to be surez you saw what you saw.
No one. There's no one there.
"Did I... just dream about him?" You ask, looking at the ceiling. "But I swear..." you trail off. "How funny... even in my dream... I see him..."
But you swear you smelled his scent. Your imagination of him is getting stronger. Your memory of him is getting move vivid. Even the smell now. That's how longing you are of him.
You miss him. Even though he is there you miss him. Oddly, you miss the time that both of you are just sitting down together in his home office and just reading. You miss casually asking him questions. You miss hearing him talk even though he's talking about his work and not to you. You miss him even though you just saw him earlier. Even though... he hurt you.
His scent. The scent you really, really like. His smell whenever you two have sex. It's not strong but it's there. Whenever you close your eyes and drift away from the high, you know you are okay as long as you could smell and hear him.
Fuck. Is this how being in love is?
Just thinking about him makes you want to cry. You are frustrated at him but at the same time frustrated to yourself as well. Why is communicating is so hard? You know that's the issue. Both of you are not good with talking nor expressing yourselves. Well, that's what Taehyun told you earlier.
Yeah, you went on a side trip earlier before going home, to meet your friend at his work. You needed someone to talk to and you know Taehyung is always there ready to listen to you.
You poured your heart out earlier, crying and all. You were sorry for disturbing him at work but you needed that cry and that hug. You had to told him your feelings about Yoongi. You have to say it out loud for you to truely understand the situation and yourself.
You needed someone's opinion to point out the obvious so it could stick in to your brain.
Growing up to a family where your opinion does not matter took a toll on you as well. Especially to an adoptive family. A family that only needed you for money.
To them, you always feel left out and does not deserve a voice. They always tell you that they only gave you a roof above your head and food to eat because you are what they needed. A piggy bank.
Your parents died in an accident years ago, when you are just 12yrs old. There was a police chase in the highway that rainy day. Every one is on high alert and giving way. But well, the criminals weren't exactly running away and trying to avoid cars. They hit quite a few vehicles during the chase and one of them was your parent's. The crash caused an explosion, killing them in an instant.
And like any drama stories on TV, yout aunt took you in because of your parent's insurance. They are not big but it is a decent amount. However, they could not actually touch it since it is saved for your education that's why the first month of you staying with them was torture. They beat you, make you work and starve you from time to time because they said, 'you don't deserve to eat unless you work for it'.
One reason why starving yourself was easy for you when you need to.
But then things changed a bit when someone knocked on the door one day and gave your adoptive parents a good amount of money. You remember the man saying 'this is for the trouble and lost we caused your family during our battle for saving our children.' You do remember you aunt, being a good actress that day, crying and all. You even saw them be in a good mood. Everyday because of that money. So since then, whenever you have a part time job or one good seasonal job, you save up and give it to them.
You do this not because you want them to be happy. You do this because you wanted peace for yourself. They will not hurt you if you give them what they need.
This is one reason too why you accepted this marriage. Even though, you know you will have trials too. But atleast you know, no one is going to hurt you physically anymore.
Though, you are having troubles now too.... it is still different. Like you said, it is the communication.
Is it all Yoongi's fault? No. Taehyung said that maybe, since I'm very submissive and him being very dominant, grew up giving orders or not listening to anyone because he is who he is, it affected the talking part in the relationship. Though he cannot say that it is a hundred percent fact. Because he explain, everyone have different stories of growing up and these affects every facet of their whole being when they get old.
Well, that's what you got from all his talk. Half of it, you are numb from all the crying and can't hear properly.
Though that talk with Taehyung,you needed that. Now all you have to do is talk to Yoongi.
If.... you have the courage too.
It is so hard to start a conversation not knowing how he feels about you. It is scary and a risk. But you are hoping it will turn out good especially now that you are expecting.
"Oh, right! The result!" You got up immediately and grab your phone.
You visited Taehyung in the hospital and he got to help you get a blood test to confirm. You forgot to talk to him about the result because you two are busy with doing friend therapy. He said, he'll just email you the result.
But then as you were scrolling scrolling through your emails your stomach growls. "I'm hungry..." you mumble and pause. "Taehyung said that if I am really pregnant... I need to eat properly now..."
And you haven't eaten dinner since you just slept since you came home. You need to eat.
Looking at the time it's pass 10pm already. Everyone must be asleep now or getting to bed so you must go and make yourself food yourself.
"Just one toast." You say as you push your blanket away. "Or two..."
You walk along the hallways as quietly as you can and then take the stairs instead of the elevator, going to the upper ground, so you could not disturb anyone.
There is still minimal light coming from the kitchen area. 'Maybe someone is still there?' You thought to yourself and hoping it is one of the maids so they could help you grab the things in the pantry. Since you don't really know how they organize it.
But then the second you turn to the corner, to enter the doorway
"Ah!" You hit your head first at something. Or at someone
Then after collecting yourself from bumping on someone, you look up to see who it was. "Sorry, I wasn't looking at--"
Fuck! It's not Yoongi nor anyone of the staff.
You tried to run back and scream but it was too late. He was quick to cover your mouth with a cloth. A scented cloth. The smell quickly pierced your nostrils and immediately made you feel dizzy and sleepy.
You are barely awake but you know he carried you over his shoulder. You could see the floor and the lights slowly to flicker. You are about to loose it.
'Help... Someone.... Yoongi... please...' You say to yourself before totally loosing consciousness.
-----
Taglist based on the replies last post đ€
@gaby-93  @goodbyetwenty  @baechugff
@amyz78 Â @qeen123 Â @armystay89 Â @bangtannie7 @daisies-and-dandelionpuffs @corruptedmistress @ot72025 @cheezwiz
@xkh0Â @eli-deville
âïžđ
Latibule Masterlist
(n) A hiding place; a place of safety and comfort
Season 1: Prologue. I. II. III. IV. V. VI. VII. VIII. IX. Epilogue
Season 2: Prologue. I. II. III. IV. V. VI.
Drabble (Exclusive Contents)
Latibule spinoff masterlist
Three times Suga was too blind to see through his bullshit
The confrontation dialogue: Season 2
Latibule Spinoff: Introducing Jimin and his Bear
Latibule Spinoff: Jungkook didn't want to get married, right?
Your necklace, his watch, and you
Latibule Spinoff: Introducing Seokjin and his sunshine
Latibule season 2 sneakpeak: When Yoongi woke up from his coma
MTL likely to be in denial
Latibule Spinoff: Introducing actor Taehyung and the reporter
Latibule Spinoff: Introducing Attorney Namjoon and his secretary
Latibule Spinoff: First doctor checkup
Tip Jar
Latibule Season 2: III
Pairing: Min Yoongi x Reader (Mafia/Detective AU)
Summary: In which he lost his latibule.
Warnings: Secret Identity, Yandere behavior, Obsessiveness, Possessiveness, Manipulative behavior, Violence, Mention of death, Disability, Sexual themes, If youâre not 18+ please, PLEASE, do not interact. Be mindful of the warnings. Let me know if I miss anything.
A/N: As promised :) Leave a comment or reblog if you enjoy!
GIF by urmingirl
Masterlist, Latibule 2.II
Taehyung looked up from his cellphone to his eldest hyung that was currently cooking their dinner. He pouted when he was not given the appropriate amount of attention he should be given. Honestly, he deserved it! After a moment when he still did not get what he wanted, he finally asked the question he had been dying to know the answer to.
âHyung, is it always like that?â
âHmm? Like what, Tae?â he asked while chopping diligently the vegetables the renowned doctor was preparing for a certain psychologist and his brothers that insisted they were hungry as well.
âWhen it endsâŠdoes it always hurt like that?â
Seokjin blinked at Taehyungâs unprompted question. He paused before he finally brought his eyes to the actor. He knew that the younger man had always been eccentric. His clinical condition definitely explained his behavior, but not this. He was never curious about the emotions he couldnât feel, nor did he ever show any interest on understanding emotions. As the years passed by, Kim Taehyung got better at masking and pretending by learning the root causes of the emotions he could see. The brothers had always thought that this was precisely why he chose to be an actor. Everytime they watched him cried, laughed, or acted furious for his movies and dramas, they thought he was a different person.
Jin thought it was just understandable why he dropped the knife he was holding.
âWhat brought this on?â
âHe-â he lifted his mobile phone to show Jin the picture Jimin snapped of their Yoongi hyung looking like he had lost all his will to live. Taehyung found it so ridiculous that Jimin even made a collage of him and a cat that depicted their hyung. â-looks like breathing is a chore and is only fighting to live so he can end his enemies.â
Jin would have laughed had this happened before he met his sunshine. But now, the mere thought of her leaving set him on edge, and he knew he would be similar to Yoongi if not worse. Slowly, he picked up his knife as he carefully chose his words. He was always like this with Taehyung ever since he knew that something was not quite right in his mind, wellâŠmore than any of them, to be honest. The younger man took things at face value, and all the brothers knew to talk in a straightforward manner so there wouldnât be any confusion on Taehyungâs part.
He kidded you not, once when they were still teenagers, they asked him to go ahead and get them a table in a restaurant. He left without any qualms only to return not an hour later carrying a big ass table from a restaurant. That was a horrifying memory, Jin thought, and that was when they all decided to change the way they talked. It was Namjoon that took it too far and enrolled the man in a body language class to better cope with society. However, it was Jungkook that forced him to take psychology classes with him for fun.
âI think itâs different,â Jin started, busying himself once again with cooking. âYoongi never has love like that, I guess. Itâs understandable that he acts like a sad lonely cat.â
Seokjin could still clearly remember how Yoongi looked at you. It was like you were all he ever wanted and more, like you were his reprieve from the darkness in his life. You were, as he called you, an angel to him. And then he lost you.
âWhy?â
âWellâŠsheâs his personal slice of heaven,â he answered, his voice contemplative and understanding of what Yoongi was going through. Jin paused in his chopping, a thoughtful expression crossing his features as he carefully considered his words. âAnd heâs been living in hell the very moment he was born. What do you think would happen if he was given a taste of heaven and then lost it?â
âJust like Hoseok hyung,â Taehyung nodded, slightly understanding the downfall of these strong men.
âSeriously, you are all worse than the ahjummas who love to talk about other peopleâs lives. Be better than that, guys,â Kim Namjoon observed with his deadpanned voice as soon as he walked in the kitchen. He took in the scene of the two men conversing and the other man quietly eating the snack Jin prepared him.
Jin scoffed as he rolled his eyes at Namjoon. âAs if you wouldnât react like that when your secretary finally resigns.â
To which, Namjoon only smirked. âWho says she can leave?â
âHow will you stop her and her son if the father finally shows up?â
Namjoon, with his hand in his pocket, calmly uttered words that no normal people would believe to have any other meaning. âWell, as you said, the dead donât exactly come back to life, do they?â
 Jin chuckled at Namjoon. Of course, he did something about that man. It was apparent, he thought. He could still vividly remember the look in Namjoonâs eyes when he told him that his secretary was pregnant and that the asshole of a father even put his hands on her. Suffice to say, it was the most unhinged Namjoon ever was.
âI think Namjoon will be the worst among us if he ever loses the love of his life,â Jin noted with lightness in his voice.
âNah,â Jungkook finally lifted his head from his bowl. âI sincerely think itâll be Taehyung.â
The conversation never left Jeon Jungkookâs mind. Anyway, he didnât need anyone to tell him to do this. He did this out of the bond he shared with his brothers. Had this happened to any among them, he would have done the same.
He thought that it was cruel to let them experience the same hell he had been living every single day.
And so, he worked tirelessly and utilized every available technology and connection he had just to look for Yoongiâs angel. When he said she was alive, when he said he felt in his heart that you could have not gone where he couldnât follow, then heâd believed him. He wouldnât lose anything by looking for you, Jungkook rationalized. But he didnât want to unnecessarily get his brotherâs hopes up until he had evidence that you were indeed alive.
One morning, it finally happened. There you were.
Jungkookâs eyes could not have gone any bigger as he watched the CCTV of a far province in his office.
That was you, he was sure.
Without a moment's hesitation, he reached for his phone and dialed the person he knew he could trust. "Hyung, can you come to my office?" he requested urgently, the excitement and disbelief evident in his voice.
âThatâs her,â Kim Namjoon validated after a moment. He was standing beside Jungkookâs seated form as he leaned in the monitor. He was ever the image of calmness with his hand in his pocket, his suit immaculate and not a crease in sight.
Seokjin raised his brows as he sat in a relaxed manner on the couch. Jungkook didnât even call him, yet he was here because he was, per his words, bored and that a certain sunshine was not where she should be. âSo the dead can indeed come back to life,â he noted with a tone the two men couldnât understand. âPray tell, Namjoon-ah. Should we tell Yoongi?â
Jungkook blinked at the rising tension between the two men. Whereas Jin merely looked curious, Namjoon looked like he was looking at the end of the sword with the way his jaw was clenched. He stood up straight and took a second to answer Seokjin.
âOf course, hyung. This is a great news, after all.â
âHmm,â Seokjin smirked, his legs crossed as though nothing could have fazed him. It was moment like this when Jungkook could see the mafia prince in his usually playful hyung. Everybody knew not to cross this man despite him appearing goofy and motherlike to them.
Jungkook thought that it would only take one momentous catastrophe for him to return to his dark persona. He didnât want to see that, though.
âHeâs suffered enough, right?â Jin asked the room with a light tone, yet his eyes pierced through Namjoonâs. âRight, Namjoon-ah?â
Seven Mississippis passed before he answered. Jungkook knew because he counted, and he hated the tension he didnât know why was present.
âJungkook, tell Yoongi hyung,â Namjoon ordered.
â-
Min Yoongiâs brows were pulled together as he walked in a bustling street of a faraway province. He had to drive almost four hours just because their maknae told him to be here at this exact hour, claiming that he desperately needed him to be there. However, Jungkook was not answering his phone despite numerous calls from him.
Where was even that little shit, Yoongi asked himself as he surveyed the whole place. Â
Despite barely getting any sleep, he found himself in a situation where he might have to scold his youngest brother for the first time. He should have been in Seoul right now, but he couldnât exactly say no to him. He had shit ton of things to do and yet he was indulging the youngest brother.
Maybe this was exactly why he was spoiled? Ah, but anyway, he was a good kid.
So where was he?!
He walked further into the thick of the plaza, his phone plastered in his ear as he listened to the annoying and incessant ringback tone of Jungkook. Seriously, at this day and age? His eyes roamed the area of happy locals, at which he rolled his eyes.
He was on the verge of deciding whether he should just go ahead and kill Jungkook when he finally answered.
âWhere the fuck are you?â he growled over the other line, his patience running thin when the man just answered innocently.
âAt Seoul, hyung-â
âThen why am I here?! I swear to heavens, if you made me drive here just to buy you a weird snack then Iâll really kill you!â
âSeokjin hyung will be mad!â
Right. The eldest was protective of the youngest. What a nuisance, he thought. âThen Iâll do it in secret.â
Jungkook chuckled nervously. He couldnât place whether he was joking or not. His money was that if his hyung could get away with it, heâd be floating in the river at this very moment. âI asked you to go there because I have a surprise for you, hyung.â
âI donât particularly enjoy surprises-â he began, but was swiftly interrupted.
âI know, I know. But this one, Iâm sure youâll like. This is the most beautiful, most precious, most amazing surprise ever. Youâll stop sulking and looking like a sad cat and Jimin hyung will finally stop taking badly captured and cropped photos of you and make it into a collage. Taehyung hyung will stop observing your miserable demeanor for his next movie. Youâll finally stop living like itâs such a chore and-â
His back was bumped by a force. Turning around, he prepared to glare at the perpetrator only to stop because there it was.
There was you.
It was as if the universe finally said that he had enough and stopped punishing him because he saw you when he was not even looking for you. Your mouth hanged agape, your hand going to your forehead as you murmured apologies to him.
He was stunted. No, he was bewildered.
Was this real? Or was this one of his cruel dreams again, a figment of his mind playing tricks on him?
But no.
He had been living in hell, yet moment he heard your voice, all the sufferings disappeared. This was really you. You were truly alive. He was frozen as his wildest dream was brought into life. His whole body went into a state of shock, something that he never thought could ever happen.
It didnât really matter the years he spent without you because one touch, one word- these were all it took for him to forget the bitterness your separation brought him.
With a trembling voice, Yoongi dared to call for you. âAnge-â
But before he could say another word, you interrupted, your voice light and apologetic.
âIâm really sorry, mister. I didnât see you,â you chuckled, slightly lifting your walking stick to explain the small accident. You bowed down at the man before going your way.
And he stood there, watching as the love of his life walked away from him, unseeing. He thought he could no longer hurt. He thought that nothing could have fazed him any longer. But he was wrong. Watching you walked, unseeing as you traversed the plaza with only your walking stick pained him.
How did this happen to you?
Was it because of the incident?
Was that why you couldnât return to him? Because you werenât able to?
Or did he miss all the glaring signs?
Slowly, he lifted the old phone you gifted him years ago to his ear. âYou didnât stop looking for her?â
Jungkook was quiet for a moment. âWellâŠI would never wish this hell on anyone, much less my brother,â he stated, his voice carrying a certain tone of sadness they often heard from him. âGo get her, hyung.â
The bustling city streets faded into a blur around you as you walked, your steps slow and deliberate despite the cacophony of noise that surrounded you. Your sight may have been almost gone, but your other senses seemed to have sharpened in response, each sound and scent painting a vivid picture in his mind.
You remembered that when you were younger, you read a passage from a book entitled, âThe Song of Achillesâ. You thought it was a well-written book, a love that transcended even death. There was a line your college friends always thought to be a masterpiece. But you never understood it. The line so many people loved never really touched you.
Until it did.
Until you understood each word written in that book.
âI could recognize him by touch alone, by smell; I would know him blind, by the way his breaths came and his feet struck the earth. I would know him in death, at the end of the world.â
Because right now, the words made sense. You could recognize him despite your deteriorating eyesight. You knew him. He was here. And he was following youâŠto what exactly? Was he here to end you? Was he here to make sure that you wouldnât tell the world of his secret identity?
Regardless of the reason, you tried to remain calm as Hoseok always ordered you to. You had no choice but to lead him back home, otherwise you were sure that he would be suspicious. The man that you used to love was perceptive, and any suspicious movements could alert him. From the moment you opened the front door to the time you closed it, you knew you only had a couple of seconds.
You fished the phone Hoseok gave you, one with tactile buttons and controls that made it easier for you to use it. You knew you couldnât use the speech-to-text feature, otherwise heâd hear. And so, with a tense movement, you sent a message to him.
Heâs here. Donât come home. Leave with my son.
fail-safe
pairing:Â yoongi x reader
wordcount: 8k
glimpse: growing up, your brother's best friend always berated you for not having a passion in life outside of loving him from afar. when yoongi leaves everything he's ever known for everything he's ever wanted, trying to move on from him becomes your biggest aspiration.
alternatively, yoongi left when you needed him the most, and comes back home at a time when you love him the least.
[ part one, intermission, part two, intermission 02, finale ]
[ a Lot of angst, eventual fluff, brother's best friend AND single dad au, So Much Yearning, unrequited love (initial), jealousy, self-deprecation, a lot of talk abt passion in an empty n hurtful way that most impassioned youngest children feel (it's a specific feeling idk!!!), eventual redemption in the next parts ]
notes: finally got to writing a new series!!! i'm beyond excited for this + this whole new concept and flow i haven't touched on before <3 i hope u love fail-safe as much as i do :-)
as always, lmk what you think <3 send in feedback n love to my askbox anytime!! | series masterlist
Yoongi buys atleast one scratch ticket a week.
The accessibility of buying one is top-notch considering that all he has to do is cross the street, shoot one look to the cashier, and he can either already go hunch in the corner of the road or in the comfort of his room. The moment his coin takes its first dig and he realizes that heâs won yet again, heâs satisfied enough not to buy another ticket.
He doesnât want to risk losing the win heâs just gained, the odds of him throwing out money besting his chances in adding to his earnings. He thinks everyoneâs a little greedy one way or another, but itâs the righteous part of him that thinks heâs different.
You do think that he is for all the right reasons, your vision only tunneling for him alone. Heâs this fixed older figure in your life and you canât figure out how to shrug him off â heâs this generous leech that sucks all of the rationality from your mind but returns it to you twofold, whether in the form of him saying something unintentionally endearing that it makes your chest hurt, or through him having to lightly smack the back of your head.
Yoongiâs your older brotherâs best friend and thereâs a novelty tag that comes with him, one that canât be topped by any material possession to your name. Heâs there for you, not in the exact way you want him to be, but nonetheless there. Heâs special and unattainable at the same time, the finiteness of his love barely extending to you.
Heâs there when you want him to burn the latest songs onto a CD youâve spent all your allowance in, and heâs there when you get annoyed that he sneaked some of his own recommendations in there. Youâre there when you later admit that his suggestions arenât half-bad, and you also happen to be there when he grins at the praise.
Heâs there when Namjoon wonât cough up the last slice of his cutlet, not because heâll actually give you his, but because heâll help your brother guard his plate. Youâd only have to mope for a solid of three seconds before the two of them give up both of their last slices, and youâre there when Yoongi insists for you to try the sauce in the spirit of going out of your routine.
You donât need Yoongi every single time but in the event that you do, he hangs back. He contemplates and hesitates and doesnât give in to every single whim that you have, but heâll be there. He lingers like the last holiday ornament you donât want to remove until itâs February, his presence being oddly similar to your favorite festivities.
Yoongiâs the equivalent of a holiday you look forward to with each passing month and day; he comes around to and for you in instances, but never even in your most sincere wishes.
âI buy one scratch ticket a week â three if Iâm really feeling lucky. When my palms itch, thatâs when I know that I really need to buy them.â
Heâs calm and collected even when youâre scrunching your nose up at him in combined worry and disbelief, humming mindlessly as you collect your thoughts. He randomly told you about his lottery routine and youâre still trying to wrap your head around how he blows his money off just easily. Yoongi has the mind to put scrap cardboard under you because sitting on the hot concrete with your uniform on canât possible be a good idea, but you try to play off your fluster into stubbornness.
Heâs just playing with his two ever-present coins (lucky charms as he calls them)â one thatâs shiny and minted in the present year, the other being the oldest coin heâs ever had that happens to be older than he is â while you mutter about.
âI donât know, Yoongs. That might be a gambling problem,â you squint, your side comment being heard clearly as day. âMight be the symptoms for hand, foot, and mouth disease too.â
âWhatâ I do not have a gambling problem! My skinâs perfectly fine too, thanks,â he defends, the light shove he gives you doing nothing to tone down your teasing.
âThatâs what people with gambling problems say.â
âGive me that-âŠâ he mutters, trying to wrestle you for the sundae he bought you using the money he won from his scratch ticket just awhile ago. You donât give in easily, even if your laughs that come straight from your chest suggest otherwise. âYou donât get it. Itâs just this nice, fun little thing I can look forward to every week. I always buy the cheapest version anyway so when I lose, itâs not a big deal.â
You relent (like you always do when it comes to Yoongi) in understanding, waving him off after regaining your breath. âNah. I get it. We all have to do things so we wouldnât lose our shit,â you trail, racking your head to find the right words.âYours is buying scratch tickets, and mine is-âŠâ
âYours is what?â Yoongi raises an eyebrow, lips quirked in eagerness to know where youâre going with this. He canât pinpoint a single thing he can attach to you and neither can you, your actual interests merely reflecting those of the people whom you love.
You love cross-stitching because your mom loves doing it, the tolerance you have for accidentally being pricked by the needle growing over time.
You enjoy playing badminton because Namjoonâs obsessed with the sport, no matter how ratty your rackets and shuttlecocks have become, and no matter how much he pushes you to ring the doorbell to your neighborâs when heâs sent it flying to their backyard.
Youâre probably an imposter yet you donât feel like it. You donât feel bad that your life most probably and will only revolve around your mom and Namjoon (maybe even Yoongi); you donât feel dissatisfied that your lifeâs mundane.Â
You go where your love goes.
âMine is watching you buy scratch tickets,â you shrug easily as if itâs the most obvious thing in the world, making him laugh heartily. Youâve probably done something right because he hauls you up to your feet immediately.
âGet up. Iâm buying you your first ticket,â he nudges you, grabbing you by the arm in excitement.
âBut Iâm not even legal!â you half-heartedly argue, internally excited that youâre finally getting to try your hand at the lottery because youâve spent a few hundred minutes of your life tuned to the channel to pass the time, awaiting the results for something you havenât even betted for.
âRight. Like I havenât seen you trying to squeeze out a drop of beer from our empty cans whenever Namjoon and I drink.â
âRude,â you roll your eyes playfully, gathering your things from the ground.
âItâs okay. Iâll give you your first sip of beer too if you want,â Yoongi offers sincerely; easily as if youâve just asked him about the weather.
Heâs here to buy you your first scratch ticket, and heâs still here to offer giving you your first sip of liquor in the future.
Your family friend for a cashier vehemently ignores the fact that youâre still underage to participate in the lottery, and instead only chuckles to herself in amusement. Sheâs an aunt that knows when to step in and not to, and she knows you wonât be harmed by a mere bet. In fact, she knows you wonât be harmed by anything with Yoongi in tow.
âI already used up all my change,â your frown in realization, holding the ticket in your hands in despair despite having scoured your wallet repeatedly.
âRub it against the pavement. Thatâs what I do,â Yoongi lies fluidly, a scoff being caught in his throat when you actually attempt to do it. âI was only kidding, Y/N. Jeez,â he groans, pulling out his wallet. âUgh. Here. You can have one of my lucky coins.â
Itâs the old one, tarnished beyond relief that you can barely recognize what itâs actual value is supposed to be.
âEw. Iâm giving it back. It looks prehistoric,â you narrow your eyes, knowing that you donât even have to put your fingers nears your nose to know that itâs already left a faint stench on them.
Yoongi rolls his eyes, a habit he canât tell heâs formed himself or got from you. âIf you use your brain for one second, youâd realize that itâs actually worth more because itâs older. Collectors would go crazy for that in the future.â
âThat sounds like a hoarding problem.â
Heâs just had about enough of your whining so he attempts to trade in the old coin for his lucky new one, but you stop him at the last minute with a meek smile.
âKidding. Thank you. Iâll keep it safe, Yoongi. I promise,â you rush out before he changes his mind, scratching your ticket in silence.
He waits for you because youâre scratching so politely and neatly, a stark opposite to his experienced skill of scratching the paint off in ten strokes or less.
Your face is too close to the ticket that Yoongi canât tell whatâs happening, making him part your hair like a curtain to peek.
âDid you win?â
âNope.â
âLet me throw that out for you.â
âNo!â you squeak, keeping the ticket close to your chest. Itâs a bummer that your first time is a loss, but it didnât mean that you wanted to forget the sentiment behind it. âI-I mean no, Iâll keep it. Itâs memorable now that I think about it.â
âAlright,â he shrugs carelessly, a smile breaking out in retaliation. âHoarder.â
âGambler,â you spit, tucking the ticket into your pencil case. âNext week again?â
Yoongi agrees, wrapping his head around the fact that he doesnât have to be alone in his little routine every Friday.
âSure.â
( ⥠)
You donât mind getting hand-me-downs.
As a matter of fact, you love receiving them. The wear and tear of the things that came before you is only proof that itâs been loved enough to be passed on to you.
You adore your motherâs dainty vintage watch that she wore throughout college, the hardware and sentiment behind it being pretty enough that you donât mind constantly getting the battery replaced. You like Namjoonâs shirts that heâs outgrown, even through the numerous phases heâs had wherein only denim and tie-dye filled his closet.
You donât mind the history behind the numerous things you have in your home, unbothered that youâre probably the only house in the block with the oldest possible rice cooker. The chips in the staircase arenât covered up with marker ink and neither are the loose stitches in the couch quilt snipped off. Itâs home to your mother and Namjoon â if itâs good enough for them, then itâs already the best for you.
Even on top of everything, you donât mind your family almost always getting you shirts and shoes that have an allowance in them. Your mom would go to Seoul and pick out the exact pair of sneakers you wanted that are atleast three sizes bigger than your actual feet, and youâd barely bat an eye.Â
You donât mind the coziness of things that are brought to you, because even if they werenât offered, youâd seek them yourself.Â
So when Yoongi mentioned that heâs decluttering his room and needed someone (read: you) to vacuum it up for him, you jump at the chance. You take a grocery bag with you, wear the nearest pair of slippers within your vicinity, and book it to his house as soon as he finished talking.
âGo crazy, kid. Almost everything in that pile is garbage so you can take anything.â
âI feel like I should be more offended than how I feel right now,â you hum, furrowing your eyebrows at the pile in front of you. Itâs a mound of Yoongi, or atleast everything heâs ever wanted up until he decided to do a general cleaning of his bedroom.
Yoongi chuckles, going through his pile of clean laundry for him to fold on the side while you scavenge for his things. âItâs either I have you take them or I get ripped off at the thrift store, then I see somebodyâs uncle wearing my shirt as an added insult.â
You huff, rummaging through his heap of belongings while conveniently trying to ignore that you may look like somebodyâs uncle the moment you wear his clothes. Everything is him; every distressed cap, every unfinished embroidered shirt, and every item of old significance with his initials branded on it.
The thick gray hoodie youâve been eyeing (along with its owner) for the better part of the last few years surfaces into your field of vision, your gasp audible enough to make him jolt because he thought youâd gotten hurt.
âNo way, this too? But this is your favorite,â you half-complain and half-rejoice, turning the hoodie inside-out eagerly in the fear that thereâs a catch to it belonging in the pile.
âEh. I know it looked good on me but I donât think itâs my favorite. Besides, Iâve bulked up! Wanna feel?â Yoongi grins, his segue eerily similar to your brotherâs at every given chance. A neighbor from down the block recently opened a small-time gym, and the both of them have not been able to shut their mouths about it since. From their gossiping alone, Yoongi and Namjoon have generated enough advertising already.
âYou and Namjoon really have to stop asking random people to feel your biceps.â
Thereâs random knick-knacks throughout the clump in the middle of his bed, some being too good and actually useful that you snag them. Yoongi lets you do what you want anyways (most of the time), not having to turn his head to berate you on what youâre only allowed to grab from his stuff.
Youâre not greedy â you already have his hoodie and that should be enough on its own. But thereâs that handkerchief with his initials embroidered on it, then that Rubikâs cube he swore his relative got for him from New York, and even the little butterfly knife he got from a souvenir shop when his family when to the beach.
There were those and there is this, looking up at you in all of its glory.
âYoongi.âÂ
âWhat now?â he sighs at your dramatic gasp, looking up from his folded laundry to see what you were going on about. It takes a second for him to fully realize why exactly were you so pumped.
âAre you serious? Your helmet?â you squeal, already hugging the shiny red mass close to you. âDoes this mean youâre passing your motorcycle to me?!â
âAre you crazy? Fuck no,â Yoongi rolls his eyes, snatching his helmet back from you. He doesnât miss the bratty frown that fills up your entire face; heâs not exactly the biggest fan whenever you were upset or angry; maybe even both. âObviously I forgot I even put my helmet there when I made that pile.â
You whine, stomping your feet in exasperation. You would dramatically plop down on his bed if only it wasnât full of his shit. âCome on! You told me you were teaching me as soon as you finish teaching Joon.â
âTeaching you how to ride my scooter is not the same as giving you it. Why would I just hand you what I bought with my hard-earned money?â Yoongi scrunches his nose, tone sharper than what he intended.
âBut you still havenât taught me,â you murmur to placate yourself and dissuade yourself from the delusion that Yoongi would even exert such an effort for you because of course â why would he do that for you?
You have an inkling that youâre being irrational for all the wrong reasons, perhaps even projecting your need to be looked after⊠by him.
Yoongi notices your mood that turned sour quickly, the silence between you becoming loaded. He didnât mean to be that blunt. âI donât think youâre even old enough to have your driving permit,â he adds in consolation, voice considerably softer.
You snicker lowly, still looking at your feet with your arms crossed. âBut Iâm old enough to backpack whenever you need me to carry shit that canât fit in your carrier.â
He immediately groans at your comeback, his furrowed eyebrows mirroring yours. âYouâre so stubborn.â
âYouâre a hypocrite,â you retort, knowing for a fact heâs known how to drive even before he was eligible for permits and licenses and whatnot.Â
Yoongi takes one, two seconds to himself to regain his composure, clearing his head in the process. Youâre still not looking at him and youâre pouting and you donât even notice the latter, making him crack a small smile.
âI will teach you next week.â
âOh my-âŠâ
He cuts you off, raising his hand in emphasis. âProvided that you listen to everything I say and wear full gear at all times. You clearly donât have a job yet-âŠâ
âOuch.â
âAnd I donât have the extra money to buy full gear for myself, so what youâll do is bundle up with your padded coat and the thickest jeans you have,â Yoongi enunciates every word, eyes keenly on you. Theyâre too wide and alert, you actually feel like listening to him.
âYou go on rides wearing your pajamas.â
âJust say âthank you, Yoongiâ.âÂ
âYou havenât done anything yet,â you trail off, head tilting in confusion.Â
Youâve had a million conversations like this with Yoongi before but of different fonts; worn, familiar, and warm.
âThank you, Yoongi,â he mouths, nodding at you to do the same. He wonât stop until you utter them back to him, and you know you wonât go home either without giving him your gratitude as you always do.
âThank you, Yoongi,â you relent, the grin that breaks through your lips being infectious enough that he laughs lowly to himself.
He exhales all the worries he has and could possibly ever have seeing you ride the motorcycle (or for you yearning to do everything that he does), grasping at whatever sanity he has left from looking after you.
âYou can have the helmet.â
( ⥠)
Yoongi knows the ins and outs of your home.
Heâs been at your house too much to the point that your mom already gave him a spare key and nobody batted an eye about it. He has his own designated slippers at the entryway too, something you would only use in a hurry if you needed to sign off on a package.
Yoongi, for some reason unfathomable (not really; you can tell exactly why because your mom is an extremely warm and inviting person), also has the power of dibs on the food in your fridge. Heâd put strips of masking tape with his name on food thatâs neither brought in nor made for him in the first place.Â
It should be off-putting â the way that for too many yet too little reason, Yoongi has become a prominent figure in your life even if you didnât ask him to. You should be peeved that you have to set up four plates more often that you set up only three; you should be annoyed at some point that when you wake up at random times through the night, youâre not totally alone to begin with.
You shouldbe angry at Yoongi to a degree because heâs in your life and you donât get to have a say on how he stays in it. The only problem is that youâre not, and probably never will.
âCanât sleep?â you mutter as you look up from your strikingly clear paper, seeing Yoongi strut across the floor with a casualness that only real occupants of the house should supposedly possess. He has his brows furrowed at you as if he didnât expect to see you in your living room, scratching his head in wonder.
âWhy are you up?â
âStressed,â you sigh, giving up altogether in attempting to make yourself look busy. Yoongi drives by your fridge to get himself a can of beer, finally seating himself beside you on the floor.Â
âStressed about what? Iâm sure itâs not about studying,â he snorts, unsurprised at your paper and the clear lack of motivation behind it. You only roll your eyes at him and he has half a mind to not remind you to not do it so much, the frown in your face reminding him that you really were frustrated.
It is you to throw the occasional tantrum, but he remembers that it was only when you were young; when Namjoon would whisper gibberish to his ear and purposely not whisper to yours just so he could tease you, or when nobody would believe that you taught yourself how to ride a bike with no training wheels. You didnât know how to do the latter at all, but what had made you throw a tantrum was that nobody believed you.
You notice Yoongiâs digs, of course. You notice each one of his more than unsubtle nods to your intelligence and whatnot, the shots at your intellect not flying over your head like he expected them to. You admit that youâve never been that scholastic; you werenât born a genius and you donât try exactly hard either.
Yoongiâs only joking but you canât help but to think that heâs pertaining to something deeper, his constant digs at your lack of a passion making you sluggish.
âWe have to write this essay,â you answer simply, your tone straightforward and unwilling for banter but Yoongi bites anyway.
âBut essays are the easiest,â he trails, looking at you the whole time as he takes a sip of his beer.
You exhale heavily because no matter what, he just canât seem to get it. Yoongi knows where youâre coming from but he doesnât know where youâre headed. As a matter of fact, you donât know where youâre headed either. âWe have to write an essay about where we see ourselves ten years from now.â
âBut thatâs still easy.â
âIf itâs so easy, then go write it for me,â you snicker, leaning back with a huff. He constantly undermines you and although you own up to your striking mundaneness from time to time, it didnât mean that you liked being looked down on. Yoongiâs too used to you being yourself, he gets taken aback when you grow sick of your own.
He gathers all his willpower, far from being sleepy unlike you who wouldâve been lulled to sleep if only you werenât dead-set on arguing with him. âYou know what? I actually will,â he claps, handing you his beer. âGo hold this for me.â
Yoongi grips your pen for dear life like you hold his beer, his hand warm as he works from sheer determination alone (heâs not competing with anyone except for whatever expectation you have for him and your paper), while yours was cold just holding his drink.
Youâve been so quiet that he actually gets curious, turning his head to check to see if youâve dozed off when actually, itâs just you eyeing the can.
âNo oneâs watching,â Yoongi breaks you out of your thoughts, carelessly shrugging. He cares and heâs far too concerned for you, but he figures that nothing would hurt you so long as he can grasp you. âItâs okay. You can have your first sip.â
You blink owlishly at him and when he jokes about taking it back, you take your first swig of beer in a panic. Yoongi only shakes his head in amusement, pausing his writing just to see the look on your face.
âOne more?â he asks right after he sees you wince, the unbearable sweetness yet bitter, stinging aftertaste of the beer making you shudder.Â
You have the urge to wash off the taste with ice cold water (youâll even drink from the tap because youâre so desperate), but you resist it just so you wouldnât look like a weakling in front of him. You wave him off with a bitterness, upset that beer doesnât taste like what youâve always imagined it to be. âJust write my essay for me,â you mull over the taste in your tongue, in deep thought while you stare at Yoongiâs back ahead of you. âDo all beers taste that way?â
âEh. Most of them do. You develop a taste for it later on,â he answers, taking the can back from you before drinking it himself. He looks too dedicated in writing your essay, only goading the curiosity in you to peek over his shoulder.
He knows you, both in heart and memory, because he shields your own paper from you when he sees your shadow hovering above him.
âYoongi?â
âHm.â
âI told you why Iâm up. Why are you up?â
Heâs silent entirely, the only indication that he heard your question being his hand pausing abruptly. Yoongi doesnât answer, and you donât ask again. âDonât worry about it.â
You take his answer to heart, dozing off on the couch before you know it. You donât remember a blanket being placed on you, nor can you remember preparing your backpack for school the next day.
Your paperâs neatly tucked into your portfolio bearing handwriting thatâs clearly not yours, but with a sentiment thatâs similar nonetheless. You read through everything quickly before even stepping towards your teacher, the tips of your fingers just as cold as Yoongiâs beer last night.
Youâve committed the paper into your memory, even until the last part with an excerpt you canât forget despite having passed the paper already. You donât know what to feel because itâs Yoongi whoâs speaking for you, detailing that ten years from now, you will still be your motherâs daughter and your brotherâs sister.
He wrote your essay either for you or in behalf of you, and you canât tell which one is better.
Yoongi, who knows the ins and outs of your home and the peaks and troughs of your heart, writes in clear handwriting â Ten years from now, I will still be Yoongiâs rock.
( ⥠)
Surprisingly, Yoongi hasnât been around that much lately.
Even Namjoon (who you consider as his Siamese twin) is clueless to why his friend hasnât been hanging out with him lately to do either everything or nothing, confused because theyâre enrolled to the same classes all the way to the same part-time jobs, yet Yoongiâs been mostly unavailable.
When Yoongi is, however, he doesnât speak at all about his previous absences. He comes as if heâs never disappeared a few times before that, his evasion to talk about his presence being apparent even if youâve asked him directly.
Youâre getting used to his new routine of hanging out with you only when the both of you are free, no longer moving mountains for both of your schedules to line up. Heâs more present this month than he was at the last, the criteria for it being how many times you bump into him in your own home.
Despite all odds and evens though, Yoongi canât get used to your silence. He knows you hold grudges longer than your brother, and the last time that he checked, he knows youâve already let go of your annoyance for him suddenly being unavailable without any explanation.Â
Itâs late, only the two of you are awake in the living room, thereâs ten scratch tickets on the table for you to share, and heâs even gotten you your own glass to which heâll put a controlled amount (a grand total of two long sips) of his own beer in. Youâre not stressing about an essay this time, but the unconscious pout on your face is still the same.
âYouâre awfully quiet.â
The frown on your face only goes deeper at being found out, the scratch of your lucky coin being the only clear thing that Yoongi hears.Â
âMy best friends want to have this slumber party,â you sigh, more upset about what youâve just uttered than you are happy about the cash prize youâve just won.
Yoongi takes what you say at face-value, groaning at his third straight loss for the night. âThatâs great. Wear cute pajamas, snap a couple of polaroids, donât be the first to fall asleep and last to wake up, and just keep a pocket knife with you when youâre going out by yourself.âÂ
The awe (and slight concern) over what he said should roll in any time now.
You should be comforted at Yoongiâs words because theyâre supposed to ease the swirl of your stomach, even if what he just said is a repackaged version of what your family said before. You should let go of your worries because Yoongi, of all people, says that itâs supposed to be great.
Instead, you feel neither of what you think Yoongi wants you to.
âWas it something I said?â he mumbles after some time, turning his nose up at you as he tries to retrace his words. âI have an extra pocket knife you can borrow if thatâs what youâre worried about.â
âWeâre gonna be talking about boys, Yoongi,â you screw your eyes shut, sighing into the palms of your hands with a heaviness. âWeâre gonna talk about crushes and experiences and all that.â
He shudders at that, his reaction mirroring Namjoonâs when you tried opening up to him. You get your brotherâs reaction to a degree, of course, because you feel as if youâd be disgusted too if the roles were reversed. You want to talk about it with your mom too, but at the end of the day, sheâs your parent and you just canât talk about anything and everything with her.Â
Yoongiâs your next plausible option.
âDo you want some ice cream right now? You know what, Iâll buy you-âŠâ Yoongi tries to evade the topic altogether, his attempt of escaping feeble as you drag him down by his hoodie.
âI havenât had my first kiss yet.â
âHeh.â
Yoongi shrugs at that, regaining his words when you deadpan at him. âSo? What about it?â
You starfish on the floor at that out of frustration, the whine youâve been bottling up coming out in the open because as usual, Yoongi doesnât get it. âI-Iâm probably the only one in my grade who hasnât kissed someone yet! I canât just lie carelessly because obviously, theyâll ask around.â
âSo?â Yoongi chuckles, his breeze towards your state shocking you. âWhatâs it to them if you havenât had your first kiss?â
âYou donât get it,â you grit through your teeth, crossing your arms so hard that it feels hard to inhale.
âIâm pretty sure I do,â he sing-songs, drinking the last of his beer. When youâre not looking though, he plans to either drink or chuck the remainder of your share because he doesnât want you to develop a taste for it.
The anger you have for Yoongi bubbles up once again, the itch in your throat unbearable. Youâre presented with the age gap between you once more, along with the raging emptiness in you that Yoongiâs reached so far and youâve reached so little.
âYou donât get it because youâve had all of these experiences when you were younger than my age right now,â you snap, although you donât look at him when you do. If you do look at him though, youâll only be reminded of how a face like his could have everything in this world â even a first kiss youâve never had.
âYeah, and so?â he knits his brows, growing defensive. You werenât lying at all, but he still feels a little offended at the dig. Heâs not not proud of it, but with the way you say it, itâs like you want him to burn in shame,
âStop saying so,â you angrily mumble in frustration, a little breathless because you still donât ease up on crossing your arms.
Yoongi straightens his posture, staring you down with his jaw set. Heâs stern as he is, nostrils flaring in irritation. âNo, Y/N. Iâm genuinely asking â so what? Whatâs it to you if I had my first kiss at a younger age? What about it if everyone else in your grade has kissed someone and you havenât? Itâs not the end of the world.â
âI-I donât know! Itâs just unfair!â you let up, yielding to both the facts that Yoongiâs right with it not being the end of the world, and that youâre still entitled to feeling upset.
âInstead of spending time obsessing over your first kiss, maybe I donât know, try being productive? Youâre heading to college soon and you havenât even thought of a career,â Yoongi goes off on you, making you roll your eyes automatically. There he goes again with the great big push of trying to push you into your supposed passions in life. âSomeone elseâs luck doesnât mean itâs already your misfortune.â
âBut it is.â
You say it so definitively, you almost convince him. You have your principles and so does Yoongi, but not everyone else. You have your principles yet you donât have the luck. Youâre not getting anywhere in life just like Yoongi or anyone else who was remotely born into wealth, no matter how quiet or obvious.
You canât pursue something that interests you in the slightest without thinking what would come out of it. You canât think of a degree and a course youâll stick with, enough to do for the rest of your life because the only other option is to fail completely if you donât. You have no plan and no passion and you donât know if youâll ever amount to anything to anyone at all.
By all means, you donât agree with Yoongi this time. Someone elseâs luck is your misfortune, in the same way that his first kiss doesnât mean that itâs yours.
The sidetrack to your argument is a closed case already, judging by your downcast gaze. âI just have to put myself out there, thatâs all. My first kiss doesnât even have to mean anything. I just want to have it,â you admit, shoulders relaxing.
âDonât,â Yoongi groans, the opposite of you as his whole body tenses.
He thinks that you donât get him at all.
âWhat do you meandonât?â
Your argumentâs long-over (atleast you thought it was) but Yoongiâs getting more agitated by the minute, the disbelief on his face throwing you off. âDonât do things just because you feel like you have to! Are you even hearing yourself right now?â
âI donât want to be left behind, Yoongi! Thatâs all Iâm trying to get at,â you raise your hands in surrender, shrugging thoughtlessly â it makes him want yell into a paper bag in exasperation. âI donât want to be picked last. I donât want to not be wanted.â
Yoongi exhales, screwing his eyes shut. It stays silent like that for a little while; him calming himself down, and you scratching your tickets. The calm doesnât stay for long because you open your mouth carelessly, again.
âCan you be my first kiss?â
âAre you insane?â
âUgh.â
You go back to your fourth scratch ticket, pouting in disappointment. Youâre unfazed about the win thatâs probably the largest sum youâve had ever since you started doing the lottery.
Youâre upset and youâre sick in the stomach but you stay silent like you never asked Yoongi to be your first kiss; itâs like you havenât indirectly admitted to him that you love him enough, more than so, to want him to be your first.
Youâre about to scratch the final ticket when Yoongi juts his hand out, fingers barely brushing yours to stop you.
âOn second thought, donât scratch that. Just keep it.â
âBecause you want to turn me into a hoarder too?â you snicker, heeding his suggestion regardless.
âBecause Iâm not going to be right about everything,â Yoongi mumbles, looking at you with a solemnness you canât decipher.
You try until the solemnness turns into pity.
âStill donât want to be my first kiss?â
Yoongi softly laughs to your face, smiling as he lets you down â whether easily or harshly, you canât tell.
âYou already know what Iâm going to say.â
( ⥠)
Youâd like to think that youâre not kept in the dark about most things.
You already know that although your mom hasnât had any relationships since your dad left, she still has plenty of suitors. Some of them are the reason why you have random food deliveries in the middle of the dinner that sheâs already cooked, some have sucked up to her by getting you and Namjoon gifts.Â
You know about Namjoonâs growing love for football, even with the lessons he takes in secret because he didnât want to trouble your mom for the money. Itâs why he does his part-time job and why youâre looking for one anyways. You donât want nor need much, so you almost always give him the remainder of your allowance by the end of each week.
Yoongi, on the other hand, you donât know much about. You know that heâs an only child with a doting mom who works overseas and a rich but emotionally unavailable dad at home, and thatâs about it. His home life is synonymous with yours, considering that your four walls have become an extension of his.
Maybe youâve become too lenient on him â either that, or heâs become too disrespectful. Itâs at times like these where your house is not his home, sickeningly so that you donât want it to be yours either.
Yoongi is a sight to behold as he makes out with a half-naked girl on your bed, in your room. Your room has never been the neatest but with everything going on, it feels that itâs become the dirtiest that itâs ever been. Your house slippers are on the floor even if you always leave them by the entryway, and your sheets are a mess despite being one of the only things you try to keep folded in the room.
Youâre angry, too much to the point that the words get caught in your throat. They catch onto bile and venom and everything at once, the strain in your voice heard when you yell.
âWhat the fuck?!â
Yoongi and the girl, whom you figure out to be Hyewon that heâs shared his first kiss with, jolt in unison. Hyewonâs scared shitless while Yoongiâs annoyed to death, the grunt he lets out pricking your ears further. âSorry, sorry. Sheâs my best friendâs sister. Sheâs so annoying,â he drags you out of your room before he even gives you the entitlement to storm out of there in a fit of rage, seeing red the longer that he seems upset at you.
âWhat the fuck was that, Yoongi?â you grit through your teeth, the moment of you seeing red turn into white because youâre so frustrated that you could actually cry. Your chestâs heavy, not only out of rage, but out of everything thatâs built up in the course of years.
âCan you keep it down?â Yoongi seethes, pursing his lips. âWhat, would you rather see us do it in the living room?â
âIn the â what? Who do you think you are? This isnât even your house, why are you bringing these girls here?â you point an accusing finger at him yet he doesnât back away, his annoyance for you only growing tenfold.
Heâs in the wrong no matter which way you look at it yet he doesnât realize it, the epiphany that Yoongi genuinely thinks heâs in the right for doing this to you making your skin burn in fire.
âThis is literally the first time Iâve ever done this! I canât bring her back to my place, my dad has guests over!â
âSo your smartest idea is to fuck someone in my bed?â
âOh, youâre welcome. Itâs the most action your four walls have ever seen,â he spits sarcastically, eyes narrowing at you. It takes little effort for him to dig up what you came to him for in worry and it terrifies you. The facet of Yoongi who had sternly told you that it was okay to be left behind if it means getting what you deserve, resembling nothing like him at the moment.
âI canât believe you!â you whisper as you tremble, the tears pricking at the corner of your eyes. âI told you that in confidence.â
âIn confidence? It doesnât take a genius to figure out that youâre not exactly a catch, Y/N.â
You clench your jaw so hard that it hurts, you ball your fists so tightly that it stings.
You leave your home without saying another word.
.
.
.
Namjoonâs panicked.
He came home a little later than usual because he had maximized the life out of his soccer lessons, only getting the signal to leave when the lights were turned off. He was only slightly worried at the first place because he was supposed to cook dinner for the both of you, but he placated himself by realizing that youâre not the baby that he still thinks you are â you could cook dinner for yourself if you were hungry already.
He thinks nothing of it. In fact, he just makes a quick stop at the convenience store so the both of you could indulge in a liter of ice cream without your mom urging to leave some for another night. You could think of a recipe from scratch (and it almost always works out at the end), so Namjoon walked in fully thinking heâll get to sniff whatever concoction you have.
Except, he walks into a completely dark house, and thatâs when he panics.
He canât find your slippers by the entryway and youâre not in your room either. Youâre not at the other convenience store hunched over taking your chances on scratch tickets, and youâre not out on the street either going people-watching.
The panic rises in him the more that Namjoon grasps this is the first time that this has ever happened and he doesnât know why. Heâs always made an effort to be absorbed into both your personal and academic affairs, and as far as he knows, youâre neither in a sleepover nor on a field trip somewhere.
Namjoon thinks itâs his fault someway somehow, and the guilt canât fully dissipate from him until he sees you.
âHey, Yoongi,â he breathlessly gasps the moment his friend answers, the latter being surprised because he thought it was you who was calling him after what happened awhile ago.
Itâs his fault and heâs realized that hours too late, and the selfish part of him thinks that itâs you calling at ten in the evening begging for forgiveness.
âWhatâs up, man? Itâs late,â he wonders out loud, thinking for a second if they were too much of the Siamese twins that you tease them to be because he canât think of a rational reason why Namjoon would call him at this time of night.
Namjoon raggedly exhales, running a hand through his hair. âYeah, sorry about that. Iâm just wondering if youâve seen Y/N by any chance?â
Yoongiâs heart drops so loudly that Namjoon thought for second that his friend had hung up on him, his urgency being shared the moment that he asked.
âWhat? Y/N isnât home?â Yoongi asks in disbelief, immediately being filled with anxiety and disbelief. Just awhile ago, the two of you were arguing outside of your room. He did hear you leave, but he had fully expected for you to be back hours ago. Heâs wracked with guilt all over, the drop in his chest amplified by the pit in his stomach.
âSheâs not. Practice ran late and I-I know sheâs responsible so I didnât hurry home,â Namjoon recalls, being more and more frazzled by the second. âShe left her phone here, and mom isnât here either because sheâs visiting my grandparents, a-and I donât want to call her because I know sheâll be worried, a-and-âŠâ
Yoongi interrupts him, the tremble in his fingers only enabling him to dig his nails into his palm deeper. âIâm coming over. Letâs look for her together.â
It barely takes a minute for the both of them to come together, not even exchanging any pleasantries with each other before Yoongi steps on the gas.Â
Namjoonâs filled with guilt, the type that only a sibling could carry as a burden. He thinks he was too selfish â too accustomed to pulling your own weight that it must have given you the impression that you had no other choice but to. Whatever it was that made you leave out of the blue, Namjoon thinks he couldâve done more. He shouldâve came home and made you dinner as promised, for starters. Heâs guilty over the fact that heâs the only close familial male figure in your life and he let this happen, as he makes Yoongi put his headlights on high-beam, scanning for anyone that looks remotely like you.
Yoongi, on the other hand, is filled with a guilt he canât even begin to explain. It corrodes him from the inside-out in realization that heâs to blame for your sudden disappearance, the fact that Namjoon comes to him first to help find you not helping at all. If only your brother knew what he had done to you, heâs positive that heâll be on the receiving end of a punch â what gets him more is that Yoongi wouldnât blame him at all.
They see you in the bus stop two cities away, dressed in the same clothes you ran out with.Â
Namjoonâs relieved beyond compare while Yoongiâs fuming, his hands tucked inside his jacket to prevent himself from squeezing you into an embrace; neither of you deserve it.Â
Thereâs an underlying anger within Namjoon, one that lies behind the back of his throat as he checks you over for any injuries. The two of you walk ahead to Yoongiâs car while he himself trails behind, his heart significantly calmer than it was the past hour, yet nowhere near normal.
âWanna tell me what you did?â your brother hums, trying to exhale the worry thatâs embedded into him with each squeeze he gives around your shoulders.
âWent to the convenience store, bumped into my friends, then we took this impromptu roadtrip to go to the night market, then we all had our first actual shot of liquor and not just beer, my friend who owns the car turned out to be a lightweight, and now everyone just has to commute home,â you narrate in recollection, squeezing Namjoon back to try and ground him.
âOkay,â he answers simply, nodding. âWanna tell me what happened before you did all those things?â
The breathless chuckle that leaves you is empty, void of any amusement at all. You smile nonetheless, unable to placate both yourself and Namjoon. âNope.â
You arrive in silence to Yoongiâs car, the words unsaid between the three of you generating more tension than your brief disappearance itself.
Yoongi opens the front door for you, but you settle for sitting in the backseat.

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch âą No registration required âą HD streaming
Endless Summer || jjk
~ Pairing: jock!Jungkook x nerd!reader
~ Genre: academic rivals to lovers , fluff, angst, smut, college au, slowburn
~ Summary: Summer vacation was right around the corner. Being in a program that required you at the beach every day was a big pro. After seeing Jeon Jungkook at the same beach as you everything was ruined. Jungkook was the schoolâs heartthrob. Girls throwing themselves at him left and right, going to parties every other day, and coming in and out of those parties with different girls. Not to mention heâs the biggest dick youâve ever met. Avoiding him was in your best interest. His being there threw avoiding him out the window. Summer canât be that bad. Right?
~ word count: 13.4k
~ Warnings: golden era!jk (yes this is a warning) oral (m & f receiving), doggy, dom!jk, sub!reader, dirty talk, unprotected sex (be smart), aftercare, so much fluff!
~ A/n: God, this is my first time writing ever!! I really hope this finds the right audience and readers please enjoy. i pray this doesnât come off as a boring story pls pls show some support, itâd be soooo appreciated đ«¶đŒđ«¶đŒ! Happy reading!
~
For the past thirty minutes you sat staring at your suitcase still trying to figure out what the hell to pack for the next months. The program that you joined had asked everyone if they wanted to go on a trip for extra credit to work for the beach down by Busan for junior year. Not that you needed it, you had zero plans made for this summer.
Nikiâs out of town visiting her family for the summer and Soheeâs out doing what Sohee does, probably out exploring abandoned places or getting high somewhere. Who knows? You decided to get up and start packing. You walked over to your closet to skim over your outfits and carefully picked out a few outfits for the next few months. After two hours of packing, your phone dings with a notification from Niki
Niki: omg canât believe itâs summer already! have fun on your little trip down to Busan. If anything happens call or text me right away! Luv ya!
You smile down at your phone. You and Niki have been friends for years, you first met in your freshman year of high school. She taught you everything, from how to do your make-up and style your clothes and all that fun stuff. Funny how you both got into the same college and ended up sharing the same dorm. Sheâs gone around the campus having different guys in and out. You would say you guys are complete opposites. You would rather stay in and watch a movie or something instead of going out and partying with drunk college students and grinding my body against sweaty skin.
After finishing up the last of your packing you respond.
Me: heyyy, omg I know! The school year went by so fast, say hi to your mom n dad for me and give Nani kisses for me! And of course, youâll always be the first to know everything! Luv u too! Enjoy your summer âĄ
Putting your phone down, you check when you are supposed to leave and meet everyone at the train station. The ticket said 8:00 am. You set your alarm for tomorrow and get ready for bed. Checking your phone for the last time you turn the lights off and drift off to dreamland.
~
Waking up to your alarm clock blaring in your ear. Itâs near 6:00 am, you get up and start getting ready. Walking into the bathroom you bring out your skin care routine. After finishing up and brushing your teeth, you go back to where your vanity is and start with your makeup.
Choosing what to wear was easy, you chose a simple outfit. An oversized black hoodie, black parachute cargos, and white gamma forces. You come out of your room to the living room and take your bag off the counter and get the rest of the bags for the trip. The drive to the train station took longer than expected. Traffic was horrible. The ride was said to be only about 30 minutes, you ended up getting there about an hour later.
After blasting music on the way there you had finally arrived, you see a few of your classmates from previous classes and walk up to say hi. âYunjin!â You shouted her name, catching her attention.
She waves at you and starts making her way over. âOh my god hey girl!â She goes in for a hug and starts talking about the next two months. âThis is so exciting! Iâve been waiting for this trip for so long, I hope we get free time because Iâm too exhausted from all those tests.â She says with low shoulders. Out of nowhere she gasps and turns to you âYouâll never fucking guess who I just sawâ You look at her with a curious face âWho?â she leans in closer âJeon Jungkookâ. Your face had gone red. Hearing Jungkookâs name coming out of her mouth left you shocked. Not forgetting the history, you and the boy had.
It all started in junior high in the 7th grade. You had finished your final tests of the year, and the scores were finally out for everyone to see. As you walked up to the board, expecting to read your name first as it always is on top of the board. Standing behind a tall boy with dark raven hair you moved to the side to peek at the score you had got.
Before you could even take a glance at the highest score the boy yells close to your ear. He jumps in the air and says âLETS FUCKING GOâ he turns around and notices you, he looks you in the eye before walking away. You go up to the board and look for your name. Right above your name is Jeon Jungkook.
You couldnât believe your eyes that he out of all people managed to score above you. You glare at him and say âHey! Did you cheat?! Thereâs no way you have the highest score after me when you couldnât even place last year!â He scoffs at you and looks at you with narrowed eyes âIâve earned that spot being last doesnât feel good right? Stop being such a conceited bitch and learn how to share the board. Accept you're not the smartest in the schoolâ he snares and walks away. You had felt a surge of anger towards that day and couldnât stand to be around him for the rest of your life. You promised yourself to avoid any contact with Jeon Jungkook and to make sure he never topped you again.
After staring at him for atleast five minutes you snap out of your thoughts. Looking over at Yunjin you say âWhat is he doing here? Iâve never seen him attend any of the meetings or give any interest in the programâ she looks back at you after looking at him âYeah, he and Yuno are close friends. I guess he brought it up to him and took it upon himself to ask Jungkook to the tripâ she shrugs. You glance over at him again and see him talking to Yuno. You never noticed his pretty features. You hadn't seen him since you bumped into him at the cafĂ© all those months ago. His hair got longer, he has more piercings, and a lot more tattoos on his right arm. Has he always looked this good?
No, thinking like this is wrong. You needed to remember all the cruel names he called you. You decided to look away after hearing the announcements on the speaker. âTrain number 7 now boarding.â is heard. Going to grab your things a hand is placed on top of one of yours. You look up and you're met with those same eyes that looked at you with hate.
âYou need help with that?â he smiles at you âNo thanks I got itâ. You quickly take the bag from his hand and board the train. Luckily, you had moved quickly enough so you could get a shared booth with Yunjin. You place your bags in the overhead compartment and get settled. It would take you about 3 hours to get there. Now settled in your seat you lay back with your head resting on the head rest and blast your music. Just as you became relaxed you felt your hoodie become wet with liquid.
âOh shit, my badâ he says
You look up at the voice. Of course, itâs him. Jungkook looks up at you and rolls his eyes.
âNice going dumbassâ you say under your breath.
Yunjin grabs tissue from her purse to help and says âGod, what the hell is his problem? He really had the audacity to walk away and not even apologies.â she said.
After heading to the washroom and putting on an extra T-shirt you had in your bag you walk back to your seat but not before you look up to see Jungkook, watching as you walk past him, you turn your head forward and sit back into your seat. This is going to be a long ride.
~
Arriving at the dorms was a hassle. Taking everyone's stuff off the train was a breeze but sorting everybody into two buses was more difficult than it should have been. Surprisingly enough you and Yunjin ended up sharing a bigger dorm with two other girls, Irene and Jini. You and Irene shared the same economics class and Jini had recently signed up for this program.
You walked around the building and noticed a pool and a hot tub placed in the back. The kitchen area was big enough for atleast fifteen people. Walking back to the common area, everyone went their own ways into their rooms and decided to meet up around one for lunch. After opening the door to your home for the next two months, you were met with the most beautiful window view. Looking out to the beach you could see the waves crashing against the shore and people enjoying their time with their families and loved ones.
After taking in the view, you walked over to your bag to pick an outfit out for lunch. You lift up one of the outfits you had picked out while packing. Touching up your makeup and getting your shoes on, you all leave to head down to meet everyone in the common area. As you walked out of your dorm, you were (yet again) met with the sight of Jungkook as you looked at each other. His dorm is right across from yours. Great! You had thought, this summer couldnât get any worse. He looks at you up and down, smirks and walks away.
~
You walk down the stairs to see a few people waiting. As you were waiting, you met up with Irene and Jini, Yunjin was still getting ready as were a few other people. Looking around the room you catch Jungkook taking a glimpse of you with his hands in his pockets. He wore a fitted T-shirt with his arm full of tattoos on display along with cargo pants. You make eye contact with him for several seconds before looking away to find Yunjin.
Finally, everyone in count went into separate cars and explored what the city had in store for them. Busan was a big city; there was so much to do. An option you had was to look around for places you could eat at while you spent your time there. You decided to walk around and look at the stores. A small old lady had her hand out waving you over to her stand. âI have a beautiful bracelet that has your name written all over it,â she said.
âItâs really pretty but I'm not looking to buy anything right nowâ you kindly declined her offer
âPlease have it for free, it compliments you so wellâ she raises her hand with the bracelet
It was decorated in white shells and blue starfish charms. You took the bracelet from her hand, and you thanked her. Finished figuring out where to settle you chose a restaurant that wasnât far from where the car was parked.
Finding a table wasnât difficult. The place wasnât packed besides a few of the other students that chose the same spot were empty. The empty space was filled with the noise of the bell at the top of the door, you look up to see where the noise had come from and thatâs when you see Jungkook. He stood there with Yuno and the rest of his other friends. He goes to sit at a table near yours.
You made eye contact, and he scoffed. You roll your eyes at him, and he speaks up
âAre you following me or something? You seem to be everywhere I am.â
You glare at him âAre you sure it's not the opposite? Every time I look up you happen to be where I am every single timeâ
He looks at you like you're mental âI think someoneâs a little stalker we chose this place before you guys walked inâ he sneered at you.
You look up to him and cross your arms, âI think the one obsessed is you, every damn time I look up there you are literally staring into my soul, what the fuck is your problem.â
âNo problem here like you said I just happen to be here when you areâ he shrugs
âAssholeâ you mumble
Walking back to your table you feel his stare burning into the back of your head.
When you excuse yourself to the bathroom you couldnât help but look up at Jungkook. He was laughing with his friends with his hands on his lap; manspreading. âGod, damn it does he have to be so fineâ You mumble under your breath
After freshening up you walk back to the table, and you see a girl next to him. Sheâs touching on his tattooed arm and giggling at what he said. You felt this weird sensation in your stomach. Was it jealousy? No way, but he canât possibly be that funny sheâs holding her stomach.
Walking back to the girls and sitting back down. Irene notices something off about your mood.
âHey, are you okay?â Irene placed a hand on your back.
âYou look a little redâ You take your phone out to check your face. You needed to calm down.
âOh, itâs just getting a little hot in here is all.â She gives you a soft smile and nods her head
After lunch was over, you decided to take a walk around the city to look around and find something to do to pass the time. Jini had found a photo booth near one of the stands selling handmade pictures âGuys!â she exclaimed âLetâs take some pictures!â Ten poses later, Yunjin found a bakery and got something to snack on while you looked around. After waiting for Yunjin and Jini you all decided to hang out and look at the scenery.
~
Walking back to the dorms it was sunset hour. The walk back to the dorms was breathtaking. The sun was setting low over the horizon, and the sounds of the waves crashing were soothing. When you got back to the dorms everyone filed to their rooms to relax and figure out the plan for what to do for dinner. You ended up texting Niki and telling her about today.
Me: Omg Niki, today was our first day of the beach program. We went out and explored Busan. Itâs so beautiful over here I wish you could see for yourself.
Me: But youâll never guess who Iâm spending the next two months with
I wait for her to respond. It only takes a couple seconds until I see the three grey dots pop up on my screen.
Niki: Aww I miss you so much we should take a girl's trip soon! But pleaseeee tell me itâs not who I think it is
Me: Jeon Jungkook
Niki: NO YOURE LYING
You chuckle at her response
Me: Iâm being serious
Niki: I thought he was stupid and didnât show up to the meetings how did he know about this trip?
Me: Supposedly heâs friends with Yunoâs group and Yuno told him about the trip.
Waiting another few seconds until the three dots appear again.
Niki: Of course, heâs friends with them they all fuck around especially Jungkook
Me: Youâre right, I shouldâve known they were friends. Anyways I gotta get ready for dinner soon, Iâll update you if anything else happens.
This time she takes a few minutes
Niki: Alrighty! Enjoy your dinner and you BETTER tell me everything! I love you and stay safe!
You smile at her last text. Putting your phone down you start to get ready for tonight. The mentor wanted everyone to have dinner together so they could discuss the plans for tomorrow. Deciding to take a shower to wash off the sweat from todayâs adventures and redo your makeup in a different style. You curled your hair and chose different shoes, deciding to go with low pumps to make walking around easier. The dress you had picked out was a simple little summer dress with small flowers decorated all over.
~
Walking downstairs you see Jungkook with Eunwoo talking. Heâs cladded with a black blazer with a white shirt underneath paired with black dress pants and white shoes. In all honesty he looked handsome tonight. His hair is slicked back and he's wearing a chain around his neck with rings on his fingers.
As you make your way down the stairs, he looks up from Eunwoo to you. He looks back down and finishes his conversation with a smile.
âHe looks like heâs about to eat you alive. I donât blame him; you look so goodâ Yunjin says
You smile at her and compliment her back âOh my God, are you kidding? You took my breath away the second you walked out of the room; I love your makeupâ you say giggling. The mentor comes up and introduces himself when everyone seems to be present.
âHello everyone, my name is Mr. Kwan I will be in charge of everything that goes on around here and I will be announcing our activities for the next month or so.â
You look around and your eyes land on Jungkook. Heâs standing next to Yuno now with his arms crossed. He must have felt your stare because he turned his head towards you and then to the floor. You can make out a faint smirk on his lip. You look away with a confused expression and take your phone out to check if you have something on your face. Not seeing anything you shake it off and turn your attention to Mr. Kwan
âTomorrow is when we start your tasks. I will assign each of you to a job and thatâs the task you must do for that week, every other week each group will switch tasks. You will get to have a day off as a break. Do I make myself clear?â Mr. Kwan says.
There's a mix of yeses and head shakes. He takes out a clip board and tells us what to do next. âOkay, I have two boards with the list of names, please take turns finding your name on either one of theseâ He places them down on a table and asks, âAny questions?â One of the many students, Vernon, raised his hand and asked, âCan we go out after hours?â
âNo, everyone should be in their rooms with lights off, no sneaking out or bringing outside guestâ As you walk over to the beach cleanup board and find your name nowhere to be seen. Finally walking to lifeguard duty, there your name was. But right under it say. Jeon Jungkook.
This means youâd have to spend the next two months in the presence of Jungkook. Shaking your head, you turn around back to Yunjin to figure out what she had gotten. But instead, you're met with a firm chest. Looking up to meet the face of the person you see him; he has his hands on your elbows to stabilize me.
âWatch where youâre going.â he says with furrowed brows.
He lets go of you and walks over to the clip boards. You hear him chuckle.
âWhatâs so funny?â You asked him.
He turns around to face me and says, âI have to spend my days at the beach with you? For two months? Iâm going to die if I even spend another minute with you.â he shakes his head pinching the bridge of his nose.
âYeah, well Iâm not so fond of you either Jeon. So, stop bitching about it, Iâm not excited about it eitherâ with that I roll my eyes and walk away.
~
At the restaurant everyone picked their own tables. You see Jungkook a few more tables down from where youâre sat, thank God. You took your seat next to Yunjin and talked about the events for the upcoming week.
âWhat did you get for this week?â I asked her.
âI have clean up duty. I heard the weatherâs supposed to be nice so Iâm not too worriedâ You clear your throat and sit up in your seat. âI have lifeguard duty and guess who Iâm with.â You look over to Jungkook and he has a grin on his face with his arms crossed and his head tilted down.
âOh no.â she says placing a hand on your arm
âI have to spend the next two months with him every single day. I donât know how Iâll surviveâ you say rubbing your head.
~
Nearing the end of the dinner everyone gets up to leave and go back to the dorms. The restaurant was only a few minutes away, so some decided to walk. Those âsomeâ being you and your group, Jungkook and his, and a couple of other students. As youâre walking, you see Jungkook walking aside Yuno.
He has his hands in his pocket and heâs looking out at the beach. It looked beautiful tonight, the moon lit up the sand and the stars were beaming. Not looking at where you were stepping, you had tripped over your feet and waited to hit the floor. But you never made contact.
Instead, you feel a strong set of arms around your waist, and when you open your eyes; you see Jungkook looking down at you. You stayed still for a few seconds before he lifted you back up. His hold tight around you tight
âBe careful, idiotâ he said before letting go
I stared at him. You had question why he didnât just stand there and let you fall. He turned around to catch up with his friends and continued to walk back to the dorms like nothing happened
~
Back at the dorms everyone goes to their respected rooms and gets ready for bed. As Irene went to turn off the light, she heard a knock on the door. You get up from the bed and check to see who it is. When you open the door and youâre met with Jungkook and Yuno. Yuno speaks up and says, âWere going out, if you wanna join us you can.â Irene and Jini walk up to me
âWhoâs at the doorâ Irene and Yuno meet eyes. He smiles at her.
âUm, were just gonna go out and hang, I was just saying that guys can come and join us if you want.â
âUh yeah sureâ she says.
âAlright, cool meet you guys down there in a fewâ You go to look up at him, but Jungkook had already had his eyes on you looking you up and down smiling. Thatâs when you realized youâre in a Hello Kitty pajama set. Looking down you quickly push past Irene and Jini.
Yunjin was fast asleep already, quietly making your way to the bathroom to get the stuff you need and change out of your clothes. You end up wearing a plain gray T-shirt with black baggy sweats
Finally done putting makeup on, only putting on some light foundation and lip gloss, you put on some white sneakers and start to head out with the girls. Closing the door softly, you walk out and see Jungkook with his arms crossed and back against the wall next to his door. He looks up and says, âWhere are your Hello Kitty pajamas?â he chuckles. you stopped to glare at him and walk away. Before you could reach the first step, you felt his grip on my arm.
âArenât you scared were gonna get caught little miss goody two shoesâ he raised his eyebrows.
âGo away, Iâm only going out because YOUR friend invited us, and all my other friends are going out with you guys. I donât want to be stuck in the dorm not doing anything.â
âAnd donât judge my Hello Kitty pjâs I saw the big ass plush sitting on your bed when I went to go downstairs earlierâ
He stops for a minute as he watches you ascend down the stairs. Hearing his loud footsteps following close behind you. Reaching the bottom of the stairs you see your friends waiting for you.
âWhat took you so long?â Jini asked
âAsk himâ you point at Jungkook
âSo where are we going?â you asked
âThereâs a bonfire my friend is hosting. Thereâs gonna be so much we can do, I canât stay in that tiny ass dorm all dayâ Yuno exclaimed. As youâre walking to the beach you feel someone walking next to you. Jungkook looks straight ahead as you make your way down to the bonfire. His hair is still damp from the shower he took, heâs wearing a gray crewneck with black shorts. His hands in his pocket he speaks up âWhy are you on this trip?â
âI could be asking you the same thing. I havenât seen you at a single meeting yet now all of a sudden, youâre interested?â
âOh? So you pay attention to me now?â he looks down smiling
âNo, itâs just that you never cared or even bothered listening to what anyone said about this program so now do you feel the need to participate in it?â
He looks everywhere but you.
âI donât know, I heard someone was going to be here and decided fuck it and signed up.â he shrugs with his hands behind his back. You look up at him with a curious look on your face. As you were about to speak up you hear Yunoâs voice
âYo, JK we could use a little help over hereâ
Jungkook looks back at you and says âGotta go, donât go tripping when Iâm not here to catch youâ he winks at you
He runs down to help the guys and youâre left confused.
~
Everyone was surrounded by the fire, drinking, and having a good time. Jungkook is across from where youâre sitting and heâs laughing about something his friend said. He looks up and meets your eyes and you quickly turn your head to look away. From the corner of your eye, Jungkook stands up to walk to the cooler next to him. He picks up a cool beer and makes his way over to you. He hands you the beer and sits next to you.
âHow do you like it so far?â he asked
âWhy are you being nice to me? You acted like you hated me the whole dayâ your eyebrows furrowed
âWhat are you talking about?â
âYou know what itâs getting late, and I donât have time to deal with you right nowâ
He stands up as the same time as you and grabs your arm âWaitâ, you stop and look at him
âAt least let me walk you back to the dormsâ
Hesitantly agreeing, he lets go of your arm and you both make your way back to the rooms.
~
Itâs the first day of your tasks. Everybody separates into different cars. The beach youâre working at is only a 30-minute drive. All the seats are taken except for the one next to the person you prayed you wouldnât have to see until you got to the beach. Jungkook looked at you and looked down on his lap. You finally went to sit down next to him. You put your earphones in and blast your music so you wouldnât have to hear him talk.
You wake up with your head heavy against something. When you open your eyes and feel Jungkookâs head on top of yours and your cheek against his shoulder. Immediately you raise your head âwaking him up in the process- and hop out of the car.
Taking in a deep breath you walk over to the ledge of the hill the cars parked at and look over the edge. You close your eyes for a moment to take in the salty air of the sea. The wind is blowing your hair out of your face. Little did you know Jungkook was staring at you; admiring the way you looked so relaxed. After a few more seconds you turn your head and walk over to the car to grab your stuff
You already had your swimsuit on under an oversized T-shirt and some shorts. It was an open back black one piece you had bought the day prior to coming on the trip. You carry your bag down the sand but feel it lift off your shoulder. You look up and see Jungkook carry it all the way down to your stations.
âOkay everyone, listen upâ Mr. Kwan yelled
âI have assigned everyone a partner to work with for the next week, please come up to me and tell me your nameâ
As you walk up to Mr. Kim you tell him your name and he tells you who he paired you with. Surprise again youâre with Jungkook. He calls him over and tells him what he told you. Jungkook looks down at you and you look up at him. He smirks and walks back to where he set your things. Following behind him you unpack your things.
You grab your sunscreen, squeeze a dollop into your hand, and you rub it all over your body; starting on your front. Jungkook stands next to you as he takes his shirt off, showing off his body. You stare up at him and admire him for just a second. He looks down and catches your eyes
âAre you staring at me?â he chuckled
Looking away quickly you say âNo, I wasnâtâ
âSure, whatever you say, you need help with that?â he says as he points to you struggling to get your back.
âYes, pleaseâ going to hand him the bottle he squeezed some on to his hand and moves your hair to the side. He glides his hand across the span of your back. He starts at your shoulders and works his way down to the middle of your back. His hands moving slowly, getting closer to your lower back.
You clear your throat, and his hands are to himself now. You lay your hair in itâs original spot and you stand to look at the beach full of people. It was only 9:00 in the morning yet the beach was packed. Walking over to your stand you climb the steps and take a seat. Jungkook walks over next to the stand, and he has a floaty in his hand. A couple of minutes pass by in silence before he speaks up.
âWhen do you want to switch spots?â
âWhen we see someone drowningâ
He sighs and sits down.
~
After nearly an hour later a group of girls walk up to him, and they giggle as loud as they can staring at him. He looks up at the noise and stares at them. âExcuse me?â one of the girls says âYes?â she extends her arm out âDo you mind taking a picture of us?â Jungkook grabs her phone and angles it. âOne, two, threeâ he takes the picture. The girl reaches for her phone and pauses to look at him.
âHey, are you free tonight?â she asked him
Watching the interaction between the two you roll your eyes. What you donât notice is that Jungkook looks up at you and back down to the girl
âUhm, no actually, I do have plans for tonight sorry.â He rejects her offers and hands her phone back to her.
She has a disappointed look on her face and a sad smile plastered on her face. âItâs okay, I hope you have a good rest of your dayâ. With that she walks away.
Now at the end of the day and the sun getting lower, you and Jungkook switched spots through half of it. Taking turns every so often. He would try to make small talk, but you always managed to find a way around it. He looks up at you and calls your name
âYou wanna jump into the water real quickâ he says as he watches you make your down from the booth.
âNo thanks, I wasnât planning on getting wet unless I needed to.â
âOh câmon just real fast. The weather is nice around this timeâ he begged
âJungkook I sai-â
Before you can finish your sentence, your body is being carried over his shoulders. You throw soft punches at his back and yell at him.
âJungkook put me down! Iâm not playing with you right now!â you screamed in his ear.
He ignores you and laughs loudly. His feet meet the water, once he's deep enough into the ocean he plunges you till you're soaked.
Emerging from the water you pull your hands back over your hair. Jungkook stops and stares at you. Admiring your beauty, when you catch him staring, he doesnât look away this time. This time he stares into your eyes. Itâs that has to look away.
âWhat?â you said
âNothingâ he clears his throat and looks down at the water
âWe should probably head back to the car. The sun is starting to setâ
You nod quietly and make your way to the shore. After one last glance at Jungkook, you walk over your things.
The walk back to the car was silent. He offered to carry your bags for you. You had rejected his offers repeatedly, but he insisted on carrying them up the steep hill back up. The way back was anything but smooth. The road was bumpy which ended with you and Jungkook bumping arms after every bump, it was summer which meant humid air. Your skin is slick with sweat. Wishing you were back to the dorms so you could soak in the hot tub.
~
When everyone got back to the hotel Mr. Kwan let everyone roam freely. You decided to head upstairs to your room to relax before going to the backyard spot of the building. When you open the room, youâre met with Yunjin and Irene.
âGod, the sun has me so exhausted I could crash right now.â you said as you lay on your bed, body spread into a star fish.
âI know, who knew the beach would be full of that much trashâ Yunjin complained
âAtleast we get to switch off, so we feel as equally as drainedâ you told her
âYeah, lifeguarding was so easy. All we did was sat there in the sun and waited for someone who needed help in the waterâ Irene added
âWell lucky you guys, I literally took laps around the whole beach and still managed to find a piece of trash in the place I was already in.â Yunjin rolled her eyes playfully
âWell if you guys arenât tired, you wanna join me in the backyard area?â
âNo, you guys go ahead. I think Iâm just gonna crash after I clean myself up. My bodyâs gonna be so sore tomorrowâ she complained
âYeah, I was planning on walking into the city and look for more things we can do while were hereâ Irene said
Looks like it was just you tonight.
~
When you woke up from your nap you looked at the clock and it read 8:00 pm. It was much later than you anticipated it to be. You get up from your bed and walk over to the bathroom. Turning on the sink you splash some water onto your face to wake yourself up a little more. You walk over to your drawer and pick out one of the bikinis you have packed.
It was a simple black two piece with bows on both sides of the hip. Covering your body up with only a T-shirt you make your way downstairs with a towel in hand and slippers on your feet. You open the gate and walk past the pool area to get to the hot tub. Before you left you grabbed a small speaker you planned on bringing and placed it next to the table near you. Playing calm music, you sink down into the water and relax your muscles.
Itâs not a few minutes later you hear the gate crack open. You open your eyes and your met with the sight of Jungkook. He hadnât put a shirt on before coming down there. His abs were out for display, his tattoos pretty as ever in the moonlight. His biceps are so visible that you almost faint. He looks to see where the music was coming from and catches sight of you in your bikini. Shirt thrown over the table with the speaker close to you. He walks over to you.
âHiâ he says lowly he stands behind you and his arms are leaning against the edge of the hot tub. His face hovering over yours. Your breath hitches as you realize how close he is.
âHiâ you say quietly.
He moves so he can climb into the pool with you. Jungkook sits on the opposite side of you and relaxes in the water as you did. After a beat of silence, he speaks up
âI havenât properly talked to you sinceâ he pauses
âEver actuallyâ
You scoff and turn your head to the side in disbelief
âYeah, I wonder whyâ
âDo you really hate me that much? All of that happened years ago, why canât you just let it go?â
âJungkook you called me names and you made me miserable. Not having those top grades; I would be punished so harshly because I wasnât smart enough for my parents. I still hate you to this day because you never realized how much hurt you put me through?! There were so many times I've overheard you talk so lowly about me. Jungkook we didn't even know each other!"
"So, to answer your question, yes, I do hate you. Stop trying to talk to me out of the blue and act like we're friends because we're not. Leave me alone" Before you can get up to leave you feel his grasp tight around your wrist.
"Hey, look, I'm sorry. Okay? I'm sorry I did all of that. But cut me some slack, I was failing and I finally got my shit together until you came in with your perfect grades and knocked me down. But like I just said this is all in the past. Can you please forget it?" he pleads
You pause for a moment, were you overreacting? Possibly. But you will never forget the cruel words he spoke about you. One last look over at him and you retreat back to your dorm.
~
Itâs been a week since your last encounter with Jungkook. He hasnât made any moves to try and talk to you. Your group was now doing trash pick-up around the beach. It was supposed to be hotter than the week before now that itâs getting later into the summer.
As you were walking around the beach to do your task you had a slight feeling of dizziness, but you decided to ignore it. You brushed it off as a headache due to skipping lunch and only having water. It was then that you realized that wasnât the case because before you could lean back up from picking up a piece of trash you stumble back. Jungkook notices this and quickly runs over to you.
He stood behind you support you with his arm wrapped around your neck.
âAre you okay? You look pale, do you need water? Or I brought a few snacks in my bag before we left, do you want me to grab one for you?â he said quickly laying you down on the sand.
âWater is fine, thank youâ
He walks over to his bag to give you his water bottle he drank from earlier. You quickly took a few gulps and retracted it from your lips. Jungkook looks down at you with a worried look.
âLook, Iâm fine just give me a few minutes and Iâll be up good as new.â
âNo, just stay here there isnât that much left to be picked up. Stay in the shade until I come back. I wonât be too longâ He walks away to finish your tasks with gloves over his hands also with a bag, and a trash scoop.
Itâs minutes later that heâs back kneeling in front of you check how you were feeling.
âYou donât look so pale anymore. We should be done for today; the sun is already starting to set, and we should be heading back now.â he says as he looks at you.
He turns his back still in a kneeling position and you look at him confused.
âWhat are you doing?â
âGet on my back. Youâre too tired to walk up the hill, I donât want you passing out.â
âIâm not gonna pass out Jungkook. Stop being so dramaticâ you say in an annoyed voice.
âJust get on my backâ he demands.
You sigh and hop on his back like he asked. He had his bag swung around to the front of his body. He stands up and carries you like you weigh nothing. After reaching the top of the hill he sets you down and you thank him quietly. You both walk back to the car where everyone else is and drive back to the dorms.
~
As you and Jini were done putting on your face masks you hear and sudden knock on the door. When you open the door, youâre face to face with Jungkook. He looks up to see your bare face. It takes him a minute to get his words out
âMy friends and I were gonna head out to get some drinks if you wanna join usâ
You look at him with astonishment. Thinking back to your conversation from a week ago. Before you could decide against it Jini walks up to the door.
âHey, Jungkook. Why are you over here so late? Shouldnât you be in your dorm?â she asked
âUh, yeah, I am but I was just asking if you guys wanted to come out with us tonight. Were just going out for drinks at this club I found not too far from here.â
âOh sure! Weâd love to go!â she says as she looks at you
You sigh and smile at her.
âOkay great come down whenever you're ready and meet us in the common area.â he says before walking away back into his room.
After you close the door, you walk over to the other girls and ask them if they wanted to go out with you.
âOh yeah! Sure, we havenât been out drinking in a while. And itâs nice to get out and away from the program and the dorms for a little bit.â Irene replied
âYesss, I need to get out. Iâve been couped up in this building for far too long.â
Now with everyoneâs agreement you all get dressed pretty for your night out. Grabbing a dress, you took out a SKIMS black dress that fitted you perfectly. You threw a cropped leather jacket with it and black heels. Your neck was decorated with a small chain, and you put your hoops on. The makeup look you went for was light. It consisted of eyeliner, mascara, and natural colored lipstick.
Once everyone was dressed you all headed downstairs to meet up with the guys. As you landed on the last step you look up at everyone. More specifically Jungkook. He had on a black jacket with black cargo pants. He also had chucky sneakers to go along with it. His ears were clad with multiple earrings, and you look down to his lip and see his lip piercing. He looked extremely good for tonight. He makes his way over to you.
âAre you guys ready?â he asked everyone, but his eyes stayed on you.
Yuno had ordered an Uber to drive to the club everyone jumped into the car and that left you sitting next to Yunjin. Jungkook was sitting by the window with Jini in between him and Eunwoo. Yuno and Irene had to order a seperate car because they wouldnât fit into the car you were all in.
~
At the club there seemed to be a long line. Eunwoo knew a quicker way in and you followed behind him. You entered from the back way, where no one else could see you.
âWhy donât you guys go find a seat. Weâll get the drinks for youâ Jungkook yelled over the music so you could hear better.
âOkayâ you yelled back as you looked around for a big table.
The room was filled with strobing lights and heavy-based music. The dance floor was full of sweaty bodies. The air around you was humid "I feel so suffocated in here" you said aloud
" You wanna go outside for a minute" Jungkook came up beside you and placed a hand on your back.
"No, it's fine I'll get used to it" you smile at him.
The boys came back with your drinks and set them down in front of you. They had bought multiple shots and took them one by one.
Once you all had a decent amount of alcohol in your system you moved to the dance floor. Irene led everyone as they all followed behind. Jungkook was closest to you. He tried his hardest to keep his hands to himself, but you were making it difficult.
Your hips move to the beat of the song. He watched as you dance like you didnât give a damn about anything. He smiled as he watched you in your own world. Jungkook starts to dance along with you, and you turn around and move with him. His hands now on your waist as you put your hands around his neck. His hands moved down to clasp around your lower back. He leans his head forward so itâs now resting against yours. You look up into his eyes and then down to his lips. You lean in closer, and then you're interrupted.
âYou mind if I cut in?â a random man from the crowd asks
You now feel uncomfortable as you let go of him. He walks in front of you and stands protectively with one hand on your arm. Jungkook looks at the guy and his jaw clenches.
âLook man were just trying to relax and have fun. Leave us aloneâ he defends. You look down and see his hands clutched into a fist.
âI came out to have some fun too.â You turn your head towards the man
âAnd it looks like sheâs getting a little boredâ he laughs
âSheâs fine, look if you donât get the fuck out of here there gonna be a fucking problemâ Jungkook yells.
The man starts to walk closer and extends his hands up to you. You clutch the back of Jungkookâs jacket tightly. He moves forward and swings at the man.
âWhat did I tell you. Get the hell out before I knock the shit out of you.â he yelled.
âJungkook stop, letâs goâ you grab his arm and try to pull him away.
Before you can move him away the man stands back up and tries to hit him before he can dodge it. He moves a little too slow and gets punched. He looks down to his hand and sees red cover his fingertips. Jungkook goes in for another swing and knocks him to the floor.
âJungkook!! Stop it, just leave it alone so we can goâ He looks up at you and turns away. You walk back to the table to collect your things so you can leave the club. You reminded yourself to text the others to let them know that you left. Jungkook sits on the curb, and you kneel in front of him. You pull out a tissue from your purse and put it up to his nose. After a beat of silence, you were the first to speak up.
âYou know, I think I hate you a little less nowâ you say with a smile
He looks up at you and chuckles
âThank you, for doing that. I donât know what I wouldâve done. And Iâm sorry you got hitâ
âDonât mention it. As long as youâre okay, then Iâm goodâ he says.
You smile to the floor and decide to order an uber so you could go back to the dorms
As youâre about to walk into your door you turn around and stop Jungkook before he could enter his room
âJungkook, thank you again. I had fun tonight, minus the fightâ you giggle
âIâm glad you did, goodnightâ he smiles
âGoodnight Jungkookâ
~
Youâre back on lifeguard duty this week. Itâs a bunch more calm than the first week of lifeguarding. Instead of sitting and switching spots for hours and not doing anything, you were able to roam around. As you were sitting on the chair you spoke up
âHey, are you thirsty? I was gonna walk over to that hut to get something to drinkâ you point into the diretion of the stall.
âNah, Iâm good, thank you.â
Standing to walk away, Jungkook canât stop thinking about that night as he watches you make your way. He couldnât stop thinking about the way you had your arms around. And how you trusted him to protect you. How close your lips were before that guy interrupted. He shakes his head from his thoughts and thinks about something else.
When you walk up to the stall you order a lemonade. You pay the man and wait for your drink. Looking around to see if anybody else was around, you see a guy. Heâs about your age and much taller than you. He notices you looking at him and you turn your head back to the bar. From the corner of your eye you see him make his way towards you.
âHeyâ he said as he tries to catch your attention. You turn your head towards him and greet him back.
âHiâ you smile at him
âAre you around here? Iâve never seen you beforeâ
âAh no, Iâm not, Iâm here for a program I volunteered for. Iâm a lifeguard.â you told him
âOh really? That seems like fun, Iâm Kai by the wayâ
You tell him your name âIt may seem like fun, but really all I do is sit and watch the people enjoy their time as I bake in the sun.â
He laughs at that. He clears his throat and speaks again
âUm, my friends and I are playing volleyball further down the beach. If you want to you can join us?â
Before you could answer Jungkook comes behind you and puts a hand around your waist. You look down to his hand up to him. Heâs wearing his sunglasses over his head.
âActually we have to get back to our dorm after our shift. Weâre a bit busy at the moment.â he says with a smile on his face.
Kai looks at him with a surprised expression on his face. He looks down to you, you aswell have a look of confusion plastered across your face. Kai looks down and chuckles.
âAlright, sorry for asking.â with that he walks away his ego a little bruised.
âWhat the hell are you doing?â you look up at Jungkook.
âI was getting thirsty. And you were taking forever so I wanted to check on you.â he shrugs.
âYou didnât need to check up on me. I was fineâ you roll your eyes at him
âPlus he was cute. I was so close to getting his numberâ
After hearing you say that Jungkookâs jaw clenches. He absolutely hates that he feels this way right now. Deciding to brush it off you both make your way back to your spot. Getting closer to the end of your shift. You start to pack your things as the beach dies down.
~
Back at the dorms Mr. Kwan decided to gather everyone for dinner to celebrate your hard work for the past month. Once you and Jungkook make it back he helps you take your things out of the car and follows you up to your room.
When you turn your back to him he waits for you to unlock the door; âThank youâ you say to him. He hands you your bags and stops for a minute. The air is stuffy around you. You wait for him to speak up and say something. But his lips never move.
Before you know it, his face is leaned over yours, and your lips are over his.
The kiss is soft. Your heart is beating out of your chest, and you need to stop to catch your breath. Parting from his lips you look up into his eyes, noses touching; he takes a deep breath before walking away to his room, leaving you dazed and speechless; not knowing what to do you stand there and try to comprehend what had just happened.
Yunjin is on the other side of the door when you walk in. She looks up at you. âWhat happened?â she asked. You unintentionally ignore her and walk to the bathroom. Your face is burning with rosy cheeks. You replay the kiss in your head. It was completely out of the blue and caught you off guard. How were you supposed to act normal the next time you saw him. The dinner was in less than 3 hours. With all the extra time you decide to get ready and drift your mind elsewhere.
~
After everyone had finished getting ready. When you and Irene make it down the stairs Irene heads straight to Yuno. The night of the club you never heard her come back to the dorm. You suspected she had spent the night with him. She had her arms around his waist looking at him with hearts in her eyes.
Now by yourself you look around for any of your friends. You see Jungkook; he looks at you, but he doesnât do anything. He meets you eye and looks away to his friend. The feeling you felt in your chest was confusion, anger, and a little hurt. How could he kiss you like that and act like it didnât happened? Turning your body to find Yunjin; she walks down the stairs and her face lights up when she spots you.
âOkay, are you ever gonna tell me what the hell happened before you walked through our door or what. Your face was so red.â she asked curiously
âIâll tell you later, I donât want to think about it right nowâ
She looks at you with a worried look and shakes her head. Everyone gets into a car and the driver drives to the restaurant.
~
Once all the students were seated, Mr. Kwan raises his glass and clinks it with the back of a butter knife. âI would like to praise you all for working so hard for this past monthâ he says enthusiastically. He raises his voice an octave higher âWith all your hard work I would like to give you the last 3 weeks of this month free, please relax, enjoy yourseleves, and have fun. You all earned itâ he announces. A bunch of chattering is heard all around. âNow, please enjoy your dinnersâ
From across the room you see Jungkook laughing and chatting with his friends. Looking at him made you feel this sense of anger. Why are you mad at him when you hate his guts? Why are you did you feel that way when he had his soft lips over yours? Why were you feeling those emotions when you saw that girl flirt with him down at the beach? Why are you feeling all these things about him now?
Why
Why
Why?
All of these questions spiraling through your head like a mantra. Not taking the overthinking you walk out the resturaunt to get some fresh air. When you walk past his table he sees you walk to the exit. Jungkook excuse himself from his friends; he stands and walks into the direction you took.
He looks through the glass door and sees you pacing with your hands on your hip and a hand in your hair. You turn to the sound of the door opening. Jungkook stood there and walked closer to you. But, you take a step back.
âWhat was thatâ you ask him.
âWhat was what?â he has a confused look on his face
âWhy are you playing dumb?! Youâre just gonna act like you never kissed me and... and I wouldnât do anything about it?â you exclaimed at him. Your emotions were all over the place. You had no idea how to handle them
He says your name quietly âIt was just a stupid kiss, no big dealâ
Suddenly, you felt a burning sensation in the back of your eyes. You didnât know for sure how you felt. But you were sure there was something there.
âOkayâ quietly
âI was just being stupid and thought something different but I guess I was wrongâ you nod your head and make your way back into the resturaunt.
The tears dropping down onto your cheek made you feel pathetic. Pathetic for making you think that Jeon Jungkook had changed over the years. For thinking that Jeon Jungkook had real feelings for you. Before you walk back to the table you check yourself one last time to make sure your eyes werenât puffy and your nose wasnât red. Right now you werenât in the mood for questions.
Sitting back down at your table and you see Jungkook come back from where you left him. He has his head down with a look of sadness on his face. He sits down next to his friends; less content than how he was before you left to go outside.
~
On the way back to the dorm Yunjin notices that your mood has dropped significantly since you came back into the resturaunt. When you finally settle into your dorm she asks you again, âOkay, for real this time, what the hell is up with you. Youâve been acting so different latelyâ
And thatâs when you explain everything to her. From the kiss and to your conflicted feelings. In all honesty you donât even know where you stand with Jungkook anymore. Youâre between hating him and possibly having the fatest crush on him.
Itâs then when itâs later into to the night you decide to call Niki. You missed talking to your best friend. Itâd been a while since you last spoke to her.
After three rings she picks up the phone
âHey babe! Howâs the trip been so far? I havenât spoke to you in so long is everything okay?â she speaks in a soft voice. Thatâs what you loved about her. She was there for you anytime of the day. You would be okay even if you hadnât spoke to each other for days at a time. That's the type of friendship you had with her.
âUgh Niki, I miss you so much. So much has happened and I need to tell you.â
âOh no, what happened? Did something bad happen?! Did you get hurt?!â she says panicked.
âNo no, Iâm okay but something did happen.â you reassure her.
âOkay please tell me, youâre scaring meâ
âJungkook kissed meâ the line is silent for a moment before itâs not.
âHE WHAT?â she yells into your ear
You have to pull the phone away because of how loud she was.
âHe kissed me after one of shifts today. I confronted him about and I feel so stupid for thinking that he liked me because right after I asked him about it he said âit wasnât a big dealâ.â you tell her in a sullen tone.
âGod is he dumb? Why would you kiss someone randomly and admit that it was nothing?â she sounded irritated.
âExactly my thoughts. Iâm so confused Niki one moment I donât care about him and the next some girl is giggling next to him touching his arm and I feel so annoyedâ
She sighs and calls your name calmly âI may be wrong but it sounds like you have feelings for himâ
You pause and register what she just said. You? Had feelings for Jeon Jungkook? Everything is starting to come together in your head. You finally speak up
âYeah, I think I doâ
~
Itâs been about a week since the dinner. You hadnât seen Jungkook. The only few times youâd seen him was when you went downstairs to eat breakfast or when he left his room to go elsewhere. But tonight was different. With the free time you were given you spent it at the beach. You hadnât gone swimming in the ocean for quite some time so you decided to put on a bikini, threw on some clothes you had laying in your drawer, and grabbed a towel from one of the cabinets in the hall.
You made your way down to the beach by yourself and brought your mini speaker with you. The playlist you had put on was a slow playlist. You watched the sun set while the song My Love is All Mine by Mitski played in the background. While the sun was still out you decided to take off your clothes and go into the water
From afar Jungkook spots you standing near the water; the waves are calm; he admires you from where heâs standing. You, completely unaware of his presence you dip your body into the water until it touches your waist. Your hair flowing in the soft wind. Behind you, you hear the water moving. When you turn your body to the sound; there he is. Heâs standing with his shirt off arms out to see and his abs for show.
Completely in awe you snap out of it and turn back around.
âWhat do you wantâ you ask quietly.
âWhat? Itâs a public beach. Itâs not like you reserved this spotâ he retorts back
âNo, Jungkook. What do you want.â You hear him sigh. He takes a deep breath and finally says
âIâm sorry, Iâm sorry that I kissed you so suddenly, Iâm sorry I made you feel the way you did after I said that kiss was nothing, Iâm sorry because that kiss made me feel so much.â he pleads. He places his arms on your waist and continues. âIâve wanted to give you that kiss since I first saw you at the train station. I havenât stopped thinking about you since we bumped into each other at the cafĂ©â
It had been several months since that incident.
You walked in on a cool spring day. The bell chimed at the top of the door as you made your way over to the counter. After you had made your order, you turned to walk over to a table. But before you can take a step you bump into something âor more something- you look up and see Jeon Jungkook. You hadnât seen him since the beginning of sophomore year. He looks down at you with an irritated look; but when he sees your face his expression drops. You looked so cute with your double layers on; making you look so soft and hugable; your hair was up in a clip and your cheeks were rosy from the cold.
âSorryâ you had told him quickly and made your way over to your table. Jungkook was surprised it was you. You had grown into such a beautiful woman. He couldnât take his eyes off you. From then on, he couldnât get you to escape his mind.
âI heard from Yuno about this trip and figured youâd go, I thought this would be my chance to make things right between us. Iâm so sorry I said all those things to you while we were growing up, I was stupid and let my ego get in the way. So, when I first saw you itâs like I couldnât see anything else but you.â he confesses.
All of this new information being thrown at you, you donât know what to do with it. You had thought for all those years and all this time the hate between you two was mutual. You couldnât have been more wrong.
âI want you to understand my feelings for you. I want to try and make it w-â before he can even finish his sentence you pull him by his hair and connect your lips. He raises his eyebrows and sinks into the kiss. His tongue slips into your mouth. He places his hands under your jaw and his other on your waist. Without breaking the kiss, he picks you up; you wrap your legs around his waist. The sun has set by now and itâs starting to get cold. He letâs go of your lips and look into your eyes. You move your lips closer to his ear and whisper âYou wanna go warm up somewhere else?â
Quickly, he drags you out of the water while you giggle into the air. He places you down and hurriedly picks your things up. He grabs your hand, and you make your way back to his dorm. His roommates are supposed to be out tonight; you had the whole room to yourselves.
~
Pushing you against the door he smacks his lips against yours. You sneak your hands under his shirt and feel his abs flex against your fingertips. You move to lift his shirt off his body. He kisses down your neck; he lifts your shirt over your head and your left with your bikini top and your shorts. He lifts you off the floor and manhandles you onto his bed. You lay on your back and look up at him. Your legs are spread with him standing between them. He glides his hand up your thighs and he drags your shorts down your leg.
Youâre left with just your bikini on now. He kisses you on your inner thighs close to where you need him the most. Jungkook grabs the bow that ties your bikini together and undoes it. Your heat is exposed to the cold air. He kisses your hip getting closer to your pussy; his hot breath touches your lips, and you gasp quietly. Finally, he makes contact; he glides his tongue through your folds, and you make small sounds of pleasure. His tongue makes figure eights over your clit; he moves his hand under your thighs to pull you closer to his mouth. His strong grip has you breathless.
Jungkook squeezes your inner thigh and gives small kisses around your cunt. He dives back in and the only thing in the air is the sound of him slurping and licking up your slick. You moan his name out loud and place your hands in his hair.
âJungkookâ you moan out loud
âSay that again, baby. Let me hear youâ he says
âUgh, Jungkook please, please donât stop.â you plead desperately
âYeah, thatâs it. Whoâs making you feel good?â
âYou! You are Jungkook!â you shout
You start to feel the pressure in your lower tummy. You tightly close your eyes, and you see stars. He pushes you through your orgasm and finally pulls away after you pull on his hair so heâs hovering over your face. You bring him down to kiss you. He slips his tongue in and kisses you softly. You can taste yourself on his lips. Jungkook pulls away and scans your face. Your fucked out gaze looking up at him. He places his hand over your cheek and stares at you.
âYouâre so God damn beautiful. So pretty like the stars. I can look at you forever.â he says to you lowly. You look up into his boba eyes, you can see the galaxy in them. He looked so pretty up closely.
He leans in and kisses you next to your cheek. He kisses your neck and then, he pushes himself up. Heâs on his knees in front of you. You can see his outline through his shorts. You go to sit up and place a hand over him. He looks down at you and you place soft pecks over his covered cock. He groans loudly; you then start to play with the waistband of his shorts; slowly you pull them. Heâs left bare in front of you. You move your hand to stroke him. Feeling his prominent veins; you thumb at his throbbing tip and place soft kisses over it.
âBaby, what are you doing to me.â He looks down at you and strokes your hair.
âCan you take me in your mouth? Or am I too big for youâ he teases
You laugh at that âI donât know, why donât we find outâ
You like a stripe down his length and stop at his tip. Looking up into his eyes; his lips are parted and he breathless. His hand is placed on the back of your head. Finally, you take him into your mouth, starting slow. He moans and tilts his head back, his grip on your hair tightens. You bob your head back and forth, using your tongue and swirling it around his tip. Your hand moves to fondle his balls, and this makes his cock twitch. Hips moving to the rhythm of your mouth and his hand guiding you to his dick.
âCan I fuck your mouth baby?â You look up at him and nod.
âTell him if Iâm hurting you. Tap on my thigh if you want me to stopâ With that he slams his cock to the back of your throat. You take deep breaths as you gag on him. Your nose hitting his pelvis he speeds up his thrusts.
âFuck yeah, thatâs it sweetheart. Doing so good for meâ he praises you.
When you reach down to your pussy you can feel youâve gotten wetter. He looks down to your where your hand was and pulls you away for a second
âNuh uh, who said you could touch yourself? Only good girls get what they want if they behaveâ he reprimands
He pulls you back onto him and starts at the pace he was at before.
Before he can finish in your mouth, he pulls you away.
âFuck I need to finish inside you. Can I do that, baby?â he asks you for reassurance
You nod up to him.
âI need you to say it, honeyâ
âYes, pleaseâ you moan
âTurn around, ass up face downâ he demands
He looks down between your ass and his cock. He then looks up between your shoulders. Your hair thrown over your shoulder and your top still on. Jungkook moves his hand along your back and unties whatâs left of your bikini.
âFuckâ he says under his breath. Finally, he takes hold of his length and drags it along your folds. You whimper silently patiently waiting for him to enter you.
He strokes himself a few more times; you feel him enter you. Gasping loudly, he groans into your ear and moves at a slow pace.
âMore, Jungkook, pleaseâ you beg
âSince you asked nicelyâ Suddenly he pounds into your hips. You can feel him in your stomach. His pace is rapid; hard.
âYouâre so deep Jungkook, fuck!â you moan.
Repeating his name repeatedly like a song. You can feel his cock twitch inside of you. You can feel every vein that around him. Every thrust you feel them against your walls. He lifts your body until your back hits his chest. His hands over your tits squeezing. Rolling your nipples between his fingers. He kisses your neck, and he places his hand over your abdomen. âGod, I can feel myself inside of you, babyâ you whimper into his neck. And thatâs when you finally snap. You tighten around him.
âGod! Jungkook! You make me feel so good, babyâ you cry.
With three final thrusts he finishes inside you. Breath heavy he slowly moves, milking himself in your tight cunt.
He places you down on his pillow and slowly removes himself from you. You whimper quietly from the loss of the feeling of him inside.
âI need to clean you up and you need to go peeâ he says
Picking up his shirt that you threw across the room he wipes you down and you twitch from sensitivity. When heâs done, he looks over your face and giggles.
âCome on, honey. Iâll help you shower when youâre done.â
âOkayâ you say softly.
~
After your shower you and Jungkook lay in his bed. Heâs not expecting his roommates to comeback; they had gone out clubbing and he assumed theyâd be out all night in someone elseâs bed. Your head placed over Jungkookâs naked chest you draw shapes over his chest. Jungkook grabs your wrist and notices one of the bracelets you're wearing. Â
âYou never thanked me for thisâ he says holding your wrist still Â
âWhat are you talking about? This old lady gave it to me for free a few weeks ago when we first got hereâÂ
He chuckles at you âThat was me, I paid for it and asked her to play a part. Apparently she played her part well because you had no idea.â he boops your nose. You scrunch your face; you look up at him in disbelief. Â
âI canât believe you do that, what if she talked to the wrong girl, huh?â you said amusinglyÂ
âThen some random girl wouldâve gotten a free braceletâ he shrugs. Â
You laugh at him. âWell, thank you for thisâ you look up at him and peck his lips. Â
He digs his face into your neck and mumbles a small âOf courseâ Â
Then, you feel his lips press small kisses into the juncture of your neck, you start laughing. All of a sudden, he stops. He lifts his head so heâs looking at you. Â
âWhat are we?â he asks Â
Realizing you never really told him how you felt. Isnât it obvious though? Â
âI could ask you the same thing Jeonâ Â
Whispering your name, he says âI really like you; I want to make up for my behavior throughout the years Iâve known you. I feel so guilty because of the way I treated you. Iâm sorry I ever said those mean things to you, babyâ he wraps he arms around you; cuddling you.Â
âI forgive youâ you hug him around his broad shoulders. âI like you too, Jungkook. Can we forget all of that? I want us to focus on the future only now.â Â
He nods at you and smiles. âSooo, does this make you, my girlfriend?â he asks with a cheeky smile. Â
Giggling at his silly smile you nod âYeah, I guess so, boyfriendâ Â
He buries his into your neck again and sighs contently. Itâs not long before you two are cuddling in the sheets and hes whispering sweet nothings into your ear as you drift off to sleep. Â
~Â
The next morning, you wake up to the other side of the bed empty. The sun is shining brightly in your face. You look down to your body and see the shirt Jungkook must have put on you while you were sleeping last night. You get up from the bed and walk over to the bathroom; but you donât register the already running water turning off. When you walk in you see Eunwoo naked walking out of the shower. âOh my god, Iâm so sorryâ you cover your eyes and quickly walk out. Picking up clothes that were thrown across the room from the previous night you manage your way back to your own room. Â
Thankfully, the girls are out doing their own thing. You walk to your own bathroom and clean yourself up a bit before walking downstairs to the kitchen. The air is filled with the smell of pancakes, eggs, and bacon. Turning the corner you see Jungkook in a fitted sports t-shirt, over the stove cooking. Â
You walk up to him and wrap your arms around his torso. Â
âGood morningâ you say in a sleepy voiceÂ
âHi, sweetheartâ he turns his body so he facing you now. He leans down to peck your lips. His nose brushing against yours. You smile at him. Â
âHow did you sleep last night?â Looking up at him with an amusing lookÂ
âWell you put to sleep pretty damn good last night so Iâd say a ten out of tenâ you laugh as you get your coffee ready. He sneaks up behind you and puts his hands around your waist.Â
âI did, huh?â he lowly says into your ear. Â
He sways you side to side and digs his face into your neck. Â
âI was thinking maybe we can go out today and we can hang out in the city. We havenât been here in a while; I want to see if they changed anything.âÂ
This was Jungkookâs hometown. He basically knew everyone. When he finished cooking your breakfast you both sat together in comfortable silence and ate. Â
Finishing up your meals, you volunteered to clean up the dishes, but he was persistent in doing them himself. After fighting for about ten minutes, you give up and walk upstairs to get ready for the day. The outfit you chose was perfect for the weather. Your makeup was simple, and your hair was casting down your shoulders. When you finish putting on your shoes you hear a knock on your door.Â
Walking up to open it you see Jungkook wearing a big puffer jacket, white tank top, and light blue jeans. His hair slightly covers his eyes. The chain around his neck and his piercings does something to you. You look up at him and smile. Â
âHiâ looking at him with stars in your eyes. Â
You look so undeniably cute. With little bows in your hair and your soft cheeks looking at him. He looks down at you and leans in to peck you on the lips. Â
âCâmon, letâs goâ Â
~Â
The weather today wasnât as harsh as those other sunny bright days. Itâs a bit colder than the last few weeks. It was a good thing you brought an extra jacket just in case. You cand Jungkook walk down the streets hand in hand. Looking around for the places you used to hang out at with your friends when you were still in grade school.Â
When you found the ânow small- playground you and Niki used to play at, you let go of Jungkookâs hand and ran to it. Â
Gasping out loud you say âOh god, itâs so much small than I remember. I havenât been here in years.â amazed by how time flies by so quickly. Jungkook watches you with a fond smile as you reminisce on the old times. You sit down on the swings and gently swing your legs back and forth. Jungkook stands next to the swing as he watches you. The sun was shining on you and he looks at your eyes theyâre glowing as you look down the sand with a smile on your face. Â
He goes to stand in front of you and holds on to the chain and stops you from swinging. You look up at him when you see his shoes appear in front of you. His hands over yours and he leans in close to your face. Â
His lips locking with yours in a soft kiss. He pulls back and he says âYouâre so beautiful.â he places a hand on your cheek. Â
He looks into your eyes and he makes a promise. Â
Saying your name in a low voice he says âI promise you, I will to take care of you for as long as you let me. I promise I wonât hurt you. I promise to stayâÂ
You look up into his eyes with tears laying on your water line. Moving your head to lay on his forehead.Â
Then, you pull him in to a kiss. Â
âI promise, I donât hate you Jeon JungkookâÂ
a/n: ahhh okay, i realllly hope you guys liked it, this idea came out of no where and I kinda made the plot up as I wrote, please show some support by reblogging, liking, commenting, and giving some feedback! I'd appreciate it so much
men should moan more


